Selected quad for the lemma: religion_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
religion_n catholic_a church_n faith_n 6,104 5 5.7683 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A04780 A suruey of the new religion detecting manie grosse absurdities which it implieth. Set forth by Matthevv Kellison doctor and Professour of Diuinitie. Diuided into eight bookes. Kellison, Matthew. 1603 (1603) STC 14912; ESTC S107995 369,507 806

There are 36 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

great_a who_o take_v in_o as_o good_a part_n the_o widow_n mite_n as_o the_o rich_a offringe_v but_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o have_v your_o majesty_n to_o esteem_v of_o this_o my_o book_n only_o as_o of_o a_o bare_a bundle_n of_o paper_n because_o i_o present_v you_o withal_o that_o humble_a heart_n and_o sincere_a affection_n which_o a_o subject_n can_v bear_v or_o owe_v unto_o his_o sovereign_n and_o with_o my_o affection_n i_o offer_v myself_o as_o your_o majesty_n most_o lowly_a &_o faithful_a servant_n which_o be_v a_o guifte_n so_o great_a be_z the_o giver_n never_o so_o vile_a that_o the_o great_a king_n of_o heaven_n require_v yea_o desire_v no_o more_o at_o our_o hand_n but_o esteem_v that_o we_o give_v all_o when_o we_o give_v our_o self_n and_o that_o we_o give_v no_o little_a when_o we_o give_v our_o all_o be_v it_o never_o so_o little_a nether_a be_v my_o present_n itself_o to_o be_v misprize_v nether_a can_v it_o of_o such_o a_o prince_n because_o the_o book_n be_v not_o my_o present_n it_o be_v but_o the_o box_n the_o present_a be_v that_o which_o it_o contain_v and_o if_o your_o majesty_n demand_v of_o i_o what_o that_o be_v i_o answer_v not_o gold_n nor_o ivory_n of_o india_n not_o rich_a and_o orient_a pearl_n for_o with_o such_o treasure_n your_o england_n like_o a_o india_n abound_v but_o it_o be_v that_o which_o be_v more_o worth_a and_o which_o your_o india_n only_o want_v and_o what_o be_v that_o it_o be_v religion_n the_o worship_n of_o god_n the_o salvation_n of_o your_o soul_n the_o safety_n of_o your_o subject_n the_o health_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o which_o you_o be_v the_o head_n the_o strength_n of_o your_o kingdom_n the_o peace_n of_o your_o people_n and_o the_o rich_a pearl_n of_o your_o crown_n this_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o my_o discourse_n these_o be_v the_o content_n of_o my_o book_n and_o this_o be_v my_o guifte_n and_o present_a which_o amongst_o so_o many_o gift_n which_o by_o so_o many_o and_o so_o mighty_a prince_n be_v present_v unto_o your_o highness_n i_o offer_v with_o all_o humility_n hope_v yea_o persuade_v myself_o that_o such_o a_o guifte_n as_o religion_n can_v not_o but_o be_v grateful_a unto_o that_o prince_n who_o be_v the_o defendor_n of_o the_o faith_n &_o protector_n of_o religion_n and_o because_o this_o unhappy_a age_n have_v be_v more_o fruitful_a than_o profitable_a in_o devise_v of_o religion_n in_o so_o much_o that_o as_o all_o be_v not_o gold_n that_o glister_v so_o now_o all_o be_v not_o religion_n w_z ch_o be_v call_v so_o lest_o i_o may_v be_v think_v to_o offer_v counterfeit_n for_o currante_n and_o heresy_n for_o true_a religion_n it_o be_v the_o catholic_a religion_n most_o noble_a prince_n which_o i_o present_v and_o which_o my_o book_n contain_v and_o by_o many_o argument_n as_o occasion_n serve_v not_o only_o prove_v but_o also_o convince_v to_o be_v the_o only_a sincere_a and_o true_a christian_a religion_n and_o unmask_v the_o new_a religion_n by_o a_o severe_a yet_o sincere_a examination_n declare_v it_o to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o error_n and_o heresy_n though_o under_o the_o paint_a face_n of_o a_o reform_a religion_n it_o have_v deceive_v some_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o especial_o your_o little_a world_n england_n which_o the_o poet_n choose_v rather_o to_o call_v a_o world_n by_o itself_o separate_v from_o the_o great_a world_n then_o a_o part_n or_o parcel_n of_o it_o because_o like_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o little_a world_n it_o contain_v compendious_o and_o in_o a_o lesser_a room_n which_o also_o be_v a_o grace_n all_o commodity_n and_o perfection_n which_o in_o the_o great_a be_v disperse_v but_o because_o i_o be_o more_o in_o examine_v and_o refute_v the_o new_a religion_n then_o in_o confirm_v the_o old_a because_o the_o good_a corn_n grow_v easy_o when_o the_o weed_n be_v extirpate_v i_o entitle_v it_o a_o survey_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n and_o if_o your_o majesty_n demand_v of_o i_o why_o i_o dedicate_v such_o a_o book_n unto_o you_o i_o can_v not_o want_n a_o answer_v because_o i_o can_v not_o want_n a_o reason_n flavius_n vegetius_n will_v tell_v your_o highness_n that_o it_o have_v be_v ever_o the_o custom_n to_o dedicate_v book_n to_o king_n and_o emperor_n as_o he_o himself_o do_v to_o valentinian_n the_o elder_a because_o say_v he_o nether_a be_v any_o thing_n well_o begin_v unless_o after_o god_n the_o king_n favour_v it_o neither_o do_v any_o thing_n beseem_v king_n better_o than_o book_n who_o as_o they_o govern_v all_o so_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a shall_v know_v all_o for_o as_o in_o the_o head_n which_o guide_v the_o whole_a body_n be_v all_o the_o sense_n so_o a_o prince_n the_o head_n of_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v endue_v with_o all_o science_n and_o as_o the_o son_n because_o it_o illuminate_v the_o planet_n which_o under_o it_o rule_n and_o guide_v the_o inferior_a world_n be_v replenish_v with_o more_o light_n than_o they_o so_o the_o king_n who_o be_v the_o son_n of_o his_o own_o world_n and_o kingdom_n from_o who_o not_o only_o the_o people_n but_o inferior_a prince_n also_o be_v to_o receve_v their_o light_n and_o direction_n shall_v be_v illuminate_v with_o a_o great_a light_n and_o knowledge_n than_o any_o of_o his_o subject_n and_o therefore_o cirus_n be_v wont_n to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o worthy_a a_o empire_n who_o be_v not_o better_o and_o wiser_n than_o the_o rest_n which_o also_o in_o effect_n king_n solomon_n surname_v wise_a affirm_v when_o he_o give_v that_o wholesome_a counsel_n to_o his_o fellow-kinge_n 6._o sap._n 6._o si_fw-la delectamini_fw-la sedibus_fw-la &_o sceptris_fw-la o_o reges_a populi_fw-la diligite_fw-la sapientiam_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la regnetis_fw-la if_o you_o be_v delight_v in_o throne_n and_o sceptre_n o_o king_n love_v you_o wisdom_n that_o you_o may_v reign_v for_o ever_o and_o to_o signify_v this_o by_o a_o emblem_n god_n himself_o give_v his_o people_n for_o their_o first_o king_n no_o other_o than_o saul_n who_o be_v high_a than_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n by_o the_o head_n and_o shoulder_n and_o see_v that_o your_o majesty_n be_v not_o only_o a_o king_n but_o a_o learned_a king_n also_o as_o by_o many_o monument_n of_o your_o rare_a wit_n and_o learning_n which_o the_o learn_a admire_v do_v plain_o appear_v to_o who_o ought_v i_o of_o duty_n to_o consecrate_v this_o my_o work_n but_o to_o such_o a_o king_n who_o for_o his_o authority_n can_v protect_v it_o and_o for_o his_o wisdom_n can_v judge_v of_o it_o yea_o the_o very_a subject_n of_o my_o book_n which_o be_v religion_n seem_v to_o require_v of_o right_a no_o other_o patron_n than_o your_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n who_o by_o office_n and_o title_n be_v the_o protector_n of_o religion_n the_o champion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o defendor_n of_o the_o faith_n this_o common_a congratulation_n also_o not_o only_o of_o your_o own_o little_a world_n but_o also_o of_o all_o the_o christiane_n world_n this_o universal_a joy_n these_o triumph_n these_o bonefyer_n which_o the_o frenchman_n call_v feux_fw-fr de_fw-fr joy_n have_v move_v and_o stir_v i_o up_o to_o show_v some_o sign_n also_o of_o my_o affection_n and_o joy_n wherewith_o my_o heart_n be_v so_o full_a that_o my_o tongue_n can_v not_o be_v silent_a all_o rejoice_v most_o gracious_a prince_n at_o your_o coronation_n as_o though_o it_o concern_v all_o and_o the_o hope_n which_o be_v general_o conceive_v of_o your_o grace_n bounty_n have_v not_o only_o pass_v your_o sea_n but_o the_o alps_n also_o the_o world_n admire_v the_o sweet_a providence_n of_o the_o almighty_a towards_o your_o majesty_n who_n even_o from_o your_o infancy_n have_v protect_v you_o from_o many_o imminent_a danger_n as_o though_o he_o have_v reserve_v you_o as_o no_o doubt_n he_o do_v for_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n the_o world_n expect_v either_o civil_a war_n or_o foreign_a invasion_n after_o the_o death_n of_o her_o majesty_n of_o late_a memory_n because_o the_o heir_n apparent_a be_v not_o name_v and_o though_o all_o man_n have_v their_o eye_n and_o expectation_n and_o desire_n also_o fix_v on_o your_o highness_n person_n yet_o they_o fear_v that_o which_o they_o desire_v and_o hope_v not_o without_o fear_n and_o yet_o conscience_n direct_v your_o noble_n and_o god_n govern_v their_o conscience_n without_o any_o blood_n shed_v without_o contradiction_n yea_o with_o great_a applause_n of_o all_o your_o highness_n be_v place_v peaceable_o in_o your_o regal_a throne_n and_o w_z ch_o be_v rare_a england_n be_v so_o enamour_a with_o your_o princely_a virtue_n and_o so_o move_v by_o your_o undoubted_a title_n that_o she_o send_v for_o you_o as_o for_o her_o love_a spouse_n and_o have_v betroth_v
ellinun_v epist_n ●_o ad_fw-la m●r_n ellinun_v such_o soldier_n such_o subject_n as_o our_o religion_n require_v and_o prince_n shall_v reign_v secure_o and_o their_o kingdom_n shall_v flourish_v more_o happy_o than_o plato_n common_a wealth_n and_o because_o religion_n good_a or_o bid_v bear_v a_o great_a sway_v in_o the_o rule_n of_o man_n life_n the_o professor_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n must_v needs_o be_v more_o prone_a to_o disobedience_n and_o rebellion_n than_o we_o because_o religion_n which_o serve_v for_o a_o bridle_n to_o we_o be_v a_o spur_n to_o they_o wherefore_o by_o catholic_n all_o your_o predecessor_n have_v be_v serve_v with_o great_a fidelity_n both_o in_o war_n and_o peace_n and_o your_o glorious_a mother_n if_o she_o be_v live_v in_o earth_n as_o she_o be_v better_a live_n in_o heaven_n will_v not_o let_v to_o witness_n what_o affection_n she_o have_v find_v amongst_o the_o english_a catholic_n and_o will_v warrant_v your_o grace_n that_o they_o will_v never_o be_v false_a to_o the_o son_n who_o have_v be_v so_o true_a to_o the_o mother_n but_o if_o your_o highness_n doubt_n of_o our_o fidelity_n we_o will_v bind_v ourselves_o by_o corporal_a oath_n to_o obey_v your_o law_n in_o all_o temporal_a cause_n and_o to_o defend_v your_o royal_a person_n your_o dear_a spouse_n our_o gracious_a queen_n and_o your_o towardlie_a child_n our_o noble_a lord_n with_o the_o last_o drop_n of_o our_o blood_n and_o this_o our_o oath_n we_o shall_v be_v content_v to_o diwlge_v to_o all_o the_o prince_n of_o europe_n yea_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o as_o your_o grace_n may_v account_v of_o we_o as_o of_o your_o sure_a so_o not_o of_o your_o few_a nor_o weak_a subject_n for_o notwithstanding_o this_o long_a persecution_n we_o be_v so_o many_o 37._o apalog_n c._n 37._o that_o as_o tertulian_n say_v to_o the_o pagan_n of_o the_o christianes_n of_o his_o time_n we_o fill_v your_o court_n your_o university_n your_o city_n your_o town_n your_o village_n yea_o your_o prison_n not_o for_o theft_n or_o murder_n but_o for_o religion_n only_o we_o have_v leave_v the_o church_n to_o the_o minister_n because_o in_o they_o be_v practise_v and_o preach_v a_o religion_n which_o our_o conscience_n can_v not_o brook_v yea_o a_o great_a part_n be_v we_o than_o any_o particular_a sect_n in_o your_o majesty_n realm_n and_o we_o be_v link_v in_o religion_n to_o all_o catholic_a prince_n and_o country_n about_o you_o who_o will_v be_v more_o love_a neighbour_n if_o they_o see_v that_o we_o their_o brother_n sin_v this_o desire_a favour_n at_o your_o grace_n hand_n and_o the_o noble_a and_o mighty_a of_o they_o wilbe_n more_o desirous_a to_o join_v in_o marriage_n with_o your_o royal_a posterity_n whereby_o how_o your_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v strengthen_v and_o your_o dominion_n enlarge_v your_o princely_a wisdom_n easy_o perceve_v and_o you_o have_v a_o example_n in_o the_o noble_a house_n of_o austria_n your_o noble_a brother_n of_o france_n that_o now_o reign_v may_v be_v a_o precedent_n in_o this_o matter_n who_o though_o he_o be_v once_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o catholic_a religion_n yet_o find_v more_o faithful_a correspondence_n in_o his_o catholic_a subject_n then_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o by_o permit_v both_o be_v serve_v of_o both_o and_o serve_v himself_o of_o both_o three_o most_o gracious_a sovereign_n to_o admit_v the_o catholic_a religion_n or_o at_o least_o to_o permit_v it_o be_v your_o great_a safety_n for_o your_o conscience_n for_o as_o you_o be_v a_o prince_n so_o be_v you_o a_o christian_a prince_n and_o therefore_o a_o champion_n 4.9_o cap._n 4.9_o and_o as_o the_o prophet_n esaie_n say_v a_o foster-father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o the_o king_n of_o france_n even_o from_o clodoveus_fw-la the_o first_o christian_a king_n of_o that_o realm_n have_v be_v call_v christianissimi_fw-la for_o their_o good_a office_n towards_o the_o catholic_a church_n annal._n genebrar_n l_o s._n chron._n baron_fw-fr to_o 9_o annal._n and_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n from_o ferdinand_n yea_o from_o alphonsus_n yea_o as_o some_o think_v from_o recaredus_n for_o extirpate_v arianisme_n and_o propagate_a the_o christian_a faith_n angl._n geneb_fw-mi l._n 4._o chron._n sleid_n l_o 3_o georg._n lilius_fw-la in_o chr._n angl._n be_v surname_v catholic_a so_o the_o king_n of_o england_n from_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o your_o grace_n great_a uncle_n for_o his_o catholic_a &_o learned_a book_n write_v against_o luther_n &_o other_o his_o most_o honourable_a service_n which_o he_o perform_v for_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v call_v defendour_n of_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v the_o catholic_a faith_n wherefore_o your_o majesty_n first_o because_o you_o be_v a_o christian_a king_n second_o because_o you●_n be_v a_o defendor_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v to_o see_v that_o the_o right_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o true_a christiane_n religion_n be_v practise_v in_o your_o realm_n this_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n under_o who_o you_o reign_v this_o the_o good_a of_o his_o church_n who_o champion_n you_o be_v this_o the_o salvation_n of_o your_o people_n who_o king_n you_o be_v this_o the_o spiritual_a health_n of_o the_o body_n of_o your_o realm_n who_o head_n you_o be_v require_v for_o if_o in_o any_o country_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o inconstaunte_a people_n change_v with_v the_o king_n in_o england_n it_o be_v most_o true_a as_o we_o have_v see_v by_o diverse_a change_n of_o religion_n in_o this_o unhappy_a age_n and_o so_o in_o your_o majesty_n it_o lie_v to_o save_v or_o not_o to_o save_v your_o people_n which_o so_o admire_v your_o authority_n and_o princely_a virtue_n that_o your_o will_n be_v their_o law_n and_o your_o la_o their_o rule_n of_o religion_n and_o where_o can_v your_o grace_n find_v a_o secure_a haven_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o yourself_o and_o your_o subject_n than_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o which_o so_o many_o martyr_n have_v dye_v so_o many_o doctor_n have_v teach_v and_o preach_v so_o many_o virgin_n have_v live_v in_o flesh_n like_o angel_n and_o so_o many_o saint_n have_v wrought_v so_o strange_a and_o wonderful_a miracle_n by_o which_o so_o many_o heresy_n have_v be_v condemn_v so_o many_o counsel_n call_v so_o many_o ecclesiastical_a law_n enact_v and_o such_o goodly_a order_n and_o discipline_n establish_v for_o which_o ch_o so_o many_o monastery_n church_n college_n university_n and_o hospital_n have_v be_v build_v &_o found_v in_o w_z ch_o so_o many_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n have_v live_v reign_v dye_v and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v also_o have_v be_v save_v and_o against_o which_o so_o many_o cruel_a persecutor_n in_o vain_a have_v raise_v force_n and_o use_v torment_n and_o so_o many_o heretic_n have_v rage_v and_o rail_v which_o be_v descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n &_o can_v prove_v a_o continual_a succession_n of_o her_o pastor_n and_o religion_n from_o they_o unto_o this_o day_n whereas_o the_o new_a church_n begin_v but_o yesterdaye_n and_o her_o preacher_n with_o she_o who_o also_o can_v not_o prove_v their_o mission_n nor_o distinguish_v themselves_o from_o false_a prophet_n who_o doctrine_n have_v all_o the_o mark_n of_o heresy_n and_o be_v rather_o antichristian_a then_o christian_n pluck_v at_o christ_n divinity_n spoil_v he_o of_o many_o honourable_a title_n to_o wit_n redeemer_n spiritual_a phifitian_n lawgiver_n eternal_a priest_n judge_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a equalize_v every_o christian_n with_o he_o make_v he_o a_o ignorant_a desperate_a and_o damn_a man_n which_o have_v nether_a priest_n nor_o sacrifice_n nor_o in_o effect_n any_o sacrament_n no_o prayer_n not_o so_o much_o as_o our_o lord_n prayer_n no_o nor_o a_o sermon_n according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v blasphemous_a in_o many_o point_n against_o god_n injurious_a to_o state_n and_o authority_n favourable_a to_o vice_n and_o bend_v to_o atheism_n all_o which_o pointe●_n i_o have_v prove_v in_o this_o book_n but_o if_o you●_n majesty_n pleasure_n or_o leisure_n be_v not_o such_o as_o by_o peruse_v this_o book_n to_o inform_v yourself_o which_o be_v most_o likely_a to_o be_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n if_o it_o shall_v please_v your_o highness_n to_o command_v a_o conference_n or_o disputation_n which_o have_v ever_o bee●_n the_o usual_a mean_n to_o determine_v controversy_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o disputation_n o●_n helias_n with_o baal_n prophet_n hist_o ●_o reg_n 18.10_o 8._o act._n 7.9_o 17._o 18_o 19_o 20._o aug_n ep_v 47._o ruf._n l._n hist_o of_o christ_n with_o the_o jew_n of_o saint_n paul_n with_o lew_n and_o gentile_n and_o of_o the_o ancie●_n doctor_n in_o counsel_n and_o out_o of_o counsel_n with_o ethinke_v and_o heretic_n you●_n majesty_n shall_v find_v diverse_a of_o your_o
they_o well_o bestow_v because_o they_o have_v the_o reward_n i_o look_v for_o if_o thou_o do_v not_o yet_o be_v they_o not_o lose_v quia_fw-la aliquid_fw-la est_fw-la voluisse_fw-la because_o some_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o have_v desire_v thy_o good_a and_o i_o have_v take_v no_o more_o pain_n than_o thy_o good_a deserve_a if_o the_o stile_n of_o my_o book_n please_v thee-not_a refuse_v not_o gold_n because_o it_o be_v ill_o fashion_v and_o remember_v that_o though_o the_o autour_fw-fr be_v thy_o countryman_n by_o birth_n yet_o he_o be_v more_o a_o strange_a than_o a_o englishman_n by_o education_n if_o thou_o find_v fault_n in_o the_o print_n yet_o find_v not_o fault_n with_o the_o printer_n he_o know_v what_o he_o do_v because_o he_o understand_v not_o what_o he_o print_v and_o i_o have_v not_o the_o leisure_n alway_v to_o over_o see_v his_o labour_n if_o i_o seem_v to_o speak_v to_o sharp_o some_o time_n it_o be_v not_o for_o any_o tooth_n against_o any_o person_n but_o for_o hatred_n of_o heresy_n and_o if_o thou_o take_v this_o my_o impolished_a work_n in_o good_a worth_o thou_o will_v give_v i_o the_o occasion_n and_o courage_n to_o take_v in_o hand_n another_o in_o which_o i_o shall_v explain_v as_o i_o have_v in_o part_n already_o and_o make_v as_o plain_a and_o plausible_a those_o point_n of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n to_o wit_n indulgence_n merit_n satisfaction_n worship_n of_o saint_n image_n and_o relic_n with_o many_o such_o other_o which_o seem_v to_o the_o deceive_v to_o imply_v injury_n to_o christ_n or_o absurdity_n as_o i_o have_v discover_v the_o gross_a error_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n but_o now_o for_o a_o vale_n and_o friendly_a farewell_n i_o beseech_v the_o to_o take_v this_o counsel_n at_o my_o hand_n build_v not_o upon_o that_o not_o so_o flatter_a as_o false_a opinion_n where_o with_o many_o use_n to_o comfort_v themselves_o to_o wit_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v save_v in_o any_o religion_n my_o second_o book_n will_v assure_v thou_o that_o without_o a_o true_a and_o inty_a faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n and_o that_o out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n chap._n see_v the_o second_o book_n and_o 4._o chap._n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n as_o god_n be_v but_o one_o the_o truth_n but_o one_o so_o his_o religion_n church_n and_o worship_n be_v but_o one_o this_o church_n and_o religion_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v amongst_o the_o reformer_n as_o my_o second_o book_n will_v tell_v thou_o because_o it_o have_v all_o the_o mark_n of_o heresy_n it_o be_v only_o to_o be_v find_v amongst_o the_o catholic_n who_o be_v nickname_v papist_n as_o thou_o may_v see_v by_o the_o same_o book_n and_o by_o some_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o book_n and_o by_o other_o part_n of_o the_o other_o book_n evident_o demonstrate_v the_o catholic_a church_n then_o be_v the_o haven_n of_o security_n to_o which_o thou_o must_v repair_v it_o be_v the_o port_n of_o salvation_n the_o ark_n wherein_o noah_n lodge_v &_o his_o family_n that_o be_v christ_n and_o his_o faithful_a people_n it_o be_v the_o barn_n where_o the_o good_a corn_n be_v lay_v up_o till_o the_o winow_v day_n it_o be_v the_o fold_n of_o christ_n sheep_n the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n the_o treasure-howse_a of_o christ_n grace_n the_o shop_n of_o spiritual_a negotiation_n the_o land_n of_o promise_n the_o paradise_n of_o the_o second_o adame_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o second_o solomon_n the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n the_o terrestrial_a heaven_n of_o those_o that_o hope_v to_o be_v bless_v the_o only_a way_n to_o life_n everlasting_a if_o then_o thou_o desire_v to_o be_v free_a from_o tempest_n and_o contrary_a wind_n of_o disagree_a heresy_n direct_v thy_o ship_n and_o sail_v to_o this_o quiet_a haven_n if_o thou_o will_v not_o make_v shipwreck_n of_o thy_o soul_n fly_v to_o this_o port_n of_o salvation_n if_o thou_o will_v not_o be_v drown_v in_o the_o deluge_n of_o sin_n or_o infidelity_n have_v recourse_n unto_o this_o ark_n out_o of_o which_o none_o can_v escape_v damnation_n if_o thou_o will_v be_v of_o christ_n choose_a corn_n repose_v thyself_o in_o this_o his_o barn_n w_z ch_o be_v the_o only_a place_n of_o purge_v from_o the_o chaff_n of_o sin_n if_o thou_o will_v be_v one_o of_o christ_n flock_n run_v to_o his_o fold_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v feed_v with_o his_o sheep_n if_o thou_o will_v be_v sure_a of_o the_o truth_n keep_v thy_o stand_n upon_o the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n if_o thou_o will_v be_v enrich_v with_o christ_n spiritual_a treasure_n this_o be_v the_o treasure_n house_v of_o all_o his_o grace_n if_o thou_o will_v traffic_v for_o heaven_n and_o heavenly_a merchandise_n enter_v the_o shop_n of_o christ_n i_o mean_v his_o church_n the_o only_a place_n of_o merit_n and_o christian_a negotiation_n if_o thou_o will_v be_v partaker_n of_o christ_n promise_n dwell_v in_o the_o land_n of_o all_o his_o promise_n if_o thou_o will_v en●●y_v faelicitie_n enter_v into_o this_o paradise_n of_o the_o second_o a._n dame_n if_o thou_o will_v honour_v god_n with_o true_a sacrifice_n and_o worship_n this_o be_v the_o only_a temple_n out_o of_o which_o nether_a prayer_n nor_o oblation_n nor_o sacrifice_n be_v please_v if_o thou_o will_v receve_v any_o influence_n and_o motion_n from_o christ_n the_o head_n incorporate_v thyself_o to_o the_o church_n his_o mystical_a body_n and_o if_o thou_o will_v be_v partaker_n of_o his_o spirit_n vvth_z be_v the_o soul_n and_o life_n of_o this_o body_n dismember_v not_o thyself_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v a_o lively_a member_n if_o thou_o will_v enjoy_v the_o bliss_n of_o angel_n in_o the_o upper_a heaven_n enter_v first_o into_o this_o lower_n heaven_n out_o of_o which_o be_v no_o hope_n to_o ascend_v to_o the_o high_a if_o thou_o will_v attain_v to_o life_n everlasting_a pass_v by_o the_o church_n it_o be_v the_o only_a way_n if_o thou_o will_v be_v one_o of_o the_o church_n triumphaunt_v be_v first_o one_o of_o the_o church_n militaunte_n and_o if_o thou_o will_v have_v god_n for_o thy_o father_n take_v his_o church_n for_o thy_o mother_n nothing_o more_o dangerous_a then_o to_o live_v out_o of_o this_o church_n and_o no_o sure_a damnation_n then_o to_o die_v out_o of_o this_o church_n be_v not_o careless_a therefore_o in_o seek_v out_o this_o church_n and_o when_o thou_o have_v find_v it_o differre_fw-la not_o thy_o entrance_n it_o be_v thy_o great_a affair_n and_o a_o matter_n of_o most_o importance_n because_o thereon_o depend_v not_o a_o temporal_a state_n of_o thy_o body_n but_o eternal_a salvation_n or_o damnation_n both_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n farewell_n and_o pray_v for_o he_o that_o wish_v thou_o well_o and_o pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thou_o may_v do_v well_o jul._n 18._o a_o dom._n 1603._o matthew_n kel_n the_o first_o book_n contain_v a_o svruey_n of_o the_o ground_n and_o fondation_n of_o this_o new_a religion_n on_o which_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o rely_v which_o either_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o their_o preacher_n or_o the_o evidence_n of_o scripture_n which_o they_o allege_v or_o their_o private_a spirit_n or_o credible_a and_o probable_a testimony_n or_o some_o visible_a judge_n who_o determine_v of_o controversy_n for_o want_n of_o which_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o if_o we_o receive_v this_o new_a religion_n we_o open_v the_o gap_n to_o all_o heretic_n and_o heresy_n the_o first_o chapter_n examine_v the_o mission_n of_o the_o preacher_n of_o this_o new_a religion_n and_o prove_v that_o they_o can_v prove_v themselves_o to_o be_v send_v from_o christ_n and_o that_o consequent_o we_o can_v give_v ear_n unto_o they_o unless_o we_o will_v harken_v also_o unto_o all_o false_a prophet_n hardly_o shall_v we_o find_v a_o subject_n so_o disloyal_a or_o private_a man_n so_o imprudent_a who_o will_v arrogate_v unto_o himself_o the_o honourable_a office_n of_o a_o imbassadour_n to_o deal_v betwixt_o prince_n and_o prince_n in_o denounicinge_v war_n or_o offer_v peace_n of_o in_o establishinge_v a_o new_a league_n or_o renewinge_v a_o old_a unless_o he_o have_v authority_n from_o his_o prince_n in_o who_o name_n he_o deal_v and_o can_v by_o letter_n of_o credit_n or_o other_o token_n make_v a_o evident_a remonstrance_n of_o his_o legatine_n power_n and_o commission_n for_o if_o he_o go_v unsent_a he_o abuse_v his_o princess_n name_n and_o if_o he_o can_v show_v his_o commission_n he_o run_v on_o a_o sleeveles_a errand_n if_o this_o be_v so_o as_o experience_n teach_v we_o that_o it_o be_v so_o and_o reason_n tell_v we_o that_o it_o must_v be_v so_o and_o thath_fw-mi betwixt_o man_n and_o man_n we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o think_v almighty_a god_n to_o be_v so_o devoid_a of_o princely_a prudence_n as_o to_o send_v his_o apostle_n and_o preacher_n to_o denounce_v
that_o his_o faith_n may_v not_o fail_v and_o because_o he_o have_v suprem_fw-la authority_n which_o all_o catholic_a bishop_n have_v ever_o acknowledge_v he_o have_v call_v many_o counsel_n and_o determine_v many_o controversy_n and_o while_o the_o church_n ever_o stand_v to_o his_o judgement_n which_o never_o yet_o be_v contrary_a to_o it_o be_v self_n she_o enuoyethe_v great_a peace_n and_o unity_n in_o faith_n and_o religion_n where_o as_o the_o ghospeller_n because_o they_o have_v no_o visible_a head_n can_v never_o call_v counsel_n never_o aggree_v upon_o any_o one_o point_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v before_o in_o controversy_n and_o never_o shall_v hereafter_o because_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v hard_a and_o therefore_o where_o ther-are_a many_o head_n there_o be_v many_o opinion_n &_o where_o be_v many_o opinion_n there_o be_v many_o contradiction_n &_o so_o no_o peace_n nor_o unity_n because_o no_o one_o supreme_a visible_a judge_n to_o determine_v and_o as_o for_o want_n of_o a_o visible_a judge_n they_o can_v not_o appease_v dissension_n after_o they_o be_v arisen_a so_o can_v they_o not_o prevent_v they_o for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o visible_a judge_n every_o cock-brain_n may_v preach_v his_o own_o fancy_n for_o true_a faith_n and_o religion_n and_o no_o man_n shall_v control_v he_o nor_o condemn_v his_o doctrine_n nor_o forbid_v his_o preach_n because_o if_o there_o be_v no_o visible_a judge_n no_o man_n have_v the_o authority_n &_o so_o the_o gap_n be_v open_a to_o all_o false_a prophet_n who_o may_v enter_v into_o the_o new_a church_n thick_a and_o three_o fold_n because_o no_o man_n therein_o be_v of_o authority_n to_o forbid_v they_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o if_o we_o accept_v of_o the_o new_a religion_n and_o incorporate_v ourselves_o to_o the_o new_a church_n we_o expose_v ourselves_o to_o all_o false_a prophet_n who_o may_v preach_v what_o they_o please_v because_o no_o man_n have_v authority_n to_o control_v they_o the_o second_o book_n contain_v a_o svruey_n of_o the_o mark_v of_o heretic_n which_o be_v prove_v to_o aggree_v so_o fit_o unto_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n that_o if_o ever_o there_o be_v any_o heretic_n they_o be_v heretic_n the_o first_o chapter_n handle_v the_o first_o mark_n of_o a_o heretic_n which_o be_v his_o breach_n which_o he_o make_v out_o of_o that_o church_n which_o be_v common_o count_v the_o true_a christian_a church_n they_o say_v common_o that_o although_o the_o devil_n disguise_v himself_o never_o so_o much_o yet_o by_o one_o mark_n or_o other_o he_o bewray_v himself_o for_o although_o sometime_o he_o investe_n himself_o in_o the_o habit_n of_o a_o young_a gallaunte_v or_o of_o a_o mortify_v religiouse_a man_n yea_o although_o in_o out_o ward_v show_v he_o transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n yet_o so_o it_o happen_v and_o i_o think_v because_o god_n will_v have_v it_o so_o that_o by_o one_o mark_n or_o other_o he_o be_v discover_v for_o either_o his_o stare_a eye_n or_o stink_a savour_n or_o horn_a head_n or_o fork_a foot_n or_o base_a voice_n discry_v this_o gallant_a creature_n to_o be_v not_o as_o he_o seem_v but_o as_o he_o be_v indeed_o a_o foul_a and_o deform_a member_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o though_o he_o shroud_n himself_o under_o the_o goodly_a name_n of_o a_o christian_n and_o wrapp_v &_o lap_n himself_o from_o top_n to_o toe_n in_o the_o innocent_a habit_n of_o a_o pastor_n 36._o vincent_n lytin_n ●_o contra_fw-la proph_n heres_fw-la novit_fw-la c_o 36._o which_o be_v scripture_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o by_o one_o mark_n or_o other_o yea_o not_o by_o one_o only_o but_o by_o many_o he_o describe_v himself_o to_o be_v as_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o counterfeit_n never_o attayn_v unto_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o currant_n and_o art_n though_o she_o may_v imitate_v nature_n yet_o shall_v she_o alway_v be_v want_v in_o one_o thing_n or_o other_o the_o counterfeit_a gold_n of_o the_o alchimiste_n have_v a_o great_a resemblance_n with_o the_o true_a gold_n but_o either_o the_o sound_n or_o wait_v or_o operation_n will_v prove_v the_o old_a proverb_n to_o be_v true_a that_o all_o be_v not_o gold_n that_o glister_v appelles_n paint_a grape_n on_o a_o boy_n head_n so_o livelie_a that_o the_o bird_n peck_v at_o they_o but_o yet_o art_n come_v short_a of_o nature_n for_o if_o the_o boy_n have_v be_v paint_v as_o well_o as_o nature_n frame_v her_o work_n the_o bird_n will_v not_o have_v be_v so_o embolden_v yea_o the_o grape_n want_v some_o thing_n for_o at_o least_o by_o peck_v the_o bird_n perceive_v that_o all_o be_v not_o grape_n that_o seem_v so_o lysippus_n can_v in_o marble_n stone_n make_v so_o goodly_a a_o portrait_n of_o a_o man_n that_o he_o will_v show_v every_o bone_n vain_a and_o wrinkle_n with_o all_o proportion_n but_o the_o want_n of_o life_n and_o motion_n well_o declare_v where_o in_o art_n be_v enforce_v to_o yield_v to_o nature_n wherefore_o let_v the_o heretic_n counterfeit_n never_o so_o coning_o let_v he_o use_v all_o the_o arte_fw-la possible_a to_o show_v himself_o a_o sincere_a and_o true_a christian_a yet_o the_o counterfeit_n must_v come_v short_a of_o the_o currant_n and_o art_n must_v yield_v to_o nature_n and_o he_o in_o one_o point_n or_o other_o will_n bewray_fw-fr himself_o to_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n which_o he_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v but_o a_o faythless_a heretic_n which_o he_o will_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v and_o the_o first_o mark_n by_o which_o he_o be_v bewray_v be_v his_o breach_n which_o he_o make_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o christian_a society_n for_o as_o the_o wander_v sheep_n be_v once_o of_o the_o fold_n and_o the_o rebel_n be_v once_o a_o subject_n and_o the_o bow_n cut_v of_o once_o live_v and_o flourish_v in_o the_o tree_n so_o heretic_n especial_o arch-heretike_n be_v at_o least_o for_o the_o most_o part_n once_o sheep_n of_o christ_n fold_n subject_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o member_n of_o his_o body_n the_o church_n wherefore_o saint_n john_n give_v we_o this_o mark_n to_o know_v a_o heretic_n by_o ex_fw-la nobis_fw-la prodierunt_fw-la 8._o l._n io._n 8._o sed_fw-la non_fw-la erant_fw-la ex_fw-la nobis_fw-la they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o us._n that_o be_v they_o live_v amongst_o we_o for_o else_o they_o can_v not_o have_v go_v out_o yet_o so_o that_o they_o be_v not_o worthy_a our_o company_n and_o therefore_o as_o rot_a bow_n be_v soon_o break_v of_o so_o they_o be_v soon_o shake_v of_o and_o take_v occasion_n to_o go_v from_o we_o who_o before_o for_o their_o evil_a life_n in_o desert_n be_v none_o of_o us._n or_o else_o to_o follow_v another_o exposition_n 10._o aug_n tract_n 3._o in_o cp_n 10._o they_o be_v amongst_o we_o in_o out_o ward_v show_n because_o they_o frequent_v sacrament_n with_o we_o but_o they_o be_v heretic_n in_o mind_n and_o so_o none_o of_o we_o and_o therefore_o they_o go_v out_o from_o us._n they_o be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o as_o evil_a humour_n in_o man_n body_n and_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v expel_v because_o they_o be_v hurtful_a to_o the_o body_n and_o no_o part_n of_o the_o substance_n for_o common_o heretic_n live_v some_o time_n secret_a before_o they_o open_v and_o disguise_v themselves_o and_o so_o before_o they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o open_o they_o be_v none_o of_o we_o secret_o or_o else_o according_a to_o another_o interpretation_n they_o be_v once_o amongst_o we_o and_o like_o true_a christianes_n live_v with_o we_o 10._o aug_n tract_n ●_o 〈◊〉_d 10._o but_o even_o then_o when_o they_o be_v by_o present_a faith_n and_o justice_n member_n of_o our_o church_n god_n forsaw_v by_o his_o divine_a foresigt_n that_o they_o will_v not_o continue_v amongst_o we_o and_o therefore_o they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o because_o even_o then_o when_o they_o be_v amongst_o we_o they_o be_v none_o of_o we_o final_o to_o persevere_v with_o we_o not_o that_o god_n his_o prescience_n be_v the_o cause_n but_o because_o he_o forsaw_v which_o be_v to_o be_v that_o be_v that_o they_o which_o be_v as_o yet_o of_o our_o society_n be_v of_o their_o own_o free_a will_n to_o leave_v we_o and_o so_o in_o god_n his_o foresight_n be_v final_o none_o of_o our_o company_n so_o that_o one_o evident_a mark_n of_o a_o heretic_n be_v that_o he_o make_v a_o breach_n out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o he_o either_o be_v or_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o member_n the_o same_o mark_n saint_n paul_n give_v we_o also_o to_o know_v a_o heretic_n when_o he_o say_v that_o some_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o fay_v 10._o 1._o tim._n 〈◊〉_d heb._n 10._o and_o that_o some_o be_v accoustume_v to_o
able_a to_o hide_v or_o wipe_v away_o this_o mark_n until_o they_o abjure_v and_o renounce_v every_o one_o of_o the_o old_a heresy_n which_o they_o have_v renew_v and_o embrace_v whole_o and_o entire_o the_o catholic_a faith_n the_o which_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o five_o chapter_n handle_v another_o mark_n of_o a_o heretic_n which_o be_v want_n of_o succession_n our_o adversary_n nether_a can_v nor_o will_v deny_v but_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n once_o plant_v true_a religion_n and_o establish_v a_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n 4._o ephes_n 4._o in_o which_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n be_v appoint_v to_o minister_v sacrament_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o govern_v and_o rule_v in_o the_o church_n the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n witness_n no_o less_o apost_n act._n apost_n which_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n the_o beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n the_o beginning_n in_o jerusalem_n the_o progress_n amongst_o the_o gentile_n for_o when_o christ_n die_v the_o principal_a foundation_n and_o corner_n stone_n be_v lay_v when_o the_o apostle_n be_v create_v the_o building_n go_v on_o and_o when_o they_o by_o preach_v &_o miracle_n augment_v the_o number_n of_o the_o first_o christianes_n than_o be_v the_o build_n of_o this_o church_n perfect_v and_o bring_v to_o that_o splendour_n and_o perfection_n that_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n emulate_v and_o envy_v the_o glory_n thereof_o and_o seek_v the_o mean_n to_o ruin_v this_o work_n of_o god_n ●_o act._n ●_o but_o in_o vain_a for_o as_o gamaliel_n tell_v they_o the_o work_n of_o god_n no_o power_n can_v dissolve_v ●_o act_n 7._o ●_o against_o this_o church_n the_o devil_n raise_v a_o tempest_n which_o begin_v with_o a_o storm_n of_o stone_n amongst_o the_o jew_n but_o by_o the_o emperor_n and_o heretic_n have_v continue_v unto_o this_o day_n in_o this_o church_n be_v call_v a_o council_n in_o jerusalem_n where_o saint_n peter_n as_o the_o head_n pronounce_v the_o sentence_n 15._o act._n 15._o and_o saint_v same_z subscribe_v the_o first_o pastor_n of_o this_o church_n be_v the_o apostle_n saint_n james_n be_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n saint_n john_n of_o ephesus_n saint_n mark_v of_o alexandria_n 1●_n eus_n l._n 2._o ●_o 1●_n saint_n peter_n first_o of_o antioch_n then_o of_o rome_n w_z ch_o be_v his_o particular_n seat_n for_o he_o be_v supreme_a bishop_n also_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n 21._o io._n 21._o and_o in_o antioch_n euodius_n succeed_v to_o saint_n peter_n anti●_n ep_v ad_fw-la anti●_n &_o after_o he_o ignatius_n in_o rome_n after_o that_o he_o have_v exercise_v the_o function_n of_o a_o supreme_a pastor_n for_o the_o space_n of_o twenty_o and_o five_o year_n depart_v not_o withstand_v some_o time_n as_o business_n or_o persecution_n enforce_v he_o before_o his_o death_n he_o appoint_v clemens_n for_o his_o successor_n but_o he_o refuse_v 2._o act._n 1●_n gal._n 2._o linus_n and_o cletus_n saint_n peter_n coadiutour_n 27._o epiph._n har_z 27._o succeed_v he_o and_o after_o they_o saint_n clemens_n accept_v of_o the_o charge_n 256._o sand._n pag._n 256._o the_o other_o apostle_n in_o other_o place_n leave_v their_o scholar_n to_o succeed_v they_o yea_o and_o place_v other_o in_o other_o place_n where_o themselves_o can_v not_o reside_v as_o saint_n john_n appoint_v policarp_n at_o smyrna_n 3●_n tert._n l._n praes_fw-la ●_o 3●_n to_o be_v brief_a ecclesiastical_a history_n from_o the_o apostle_n deriu●_n a_o christian_a church_n and_o succession_n of_o pastor_n unto_o these_o day_n so_o that_o a_o true_a christian_a church_n be_v once_o plant_v and_o establish_v which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a then_o undoubted_o that_o now_o be_v the_o true_a church_n they_o the_o true_a christian_n those_o the_o true_a pastor_n that_o the_o true_a faith_fw-mi the_o which_o from_o the_o first_o and_o primative_a church_n by_o a_o continual_a succession_n can_v be_v deduce_v for_o the_o church_n be_v call_v apostolical_a not_o only_o because_o be_v be_v once_o plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o because_o it_o be_v descend_v from_o they_o by_o succession_n and_o they_o must_v be_v heretic_n and_o bastard_n christian_n degenerate_v from_o their_o first_o institution_n who_o can_v not_o show_v this_o succession_n and_o their_o church_n shall_v be_v 20._o l._n pras_n c._n 20._o not_o apostolical_a but_o apostatical_a this_o argument_n hand_n let_v tertulian_n in_o his_o book_n of_o prescription_n where_o he_o show_v how_o all_o particular_a church_n be_v first_o plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o how_o other_o church_n from_o they_o re_fw-mi ceive_v faith_n and_o religion_n and_o say_n eth_z he_o if_o now_o you_o will_v know_v what_o religion_n be_v the_o true_a christiane_n religion_n you_o must_v confer_v it_o with_o some_o former_a church_n from_o which_o it_o be_v descend_v because_o say_v ethe_o he_o omne_fw-la genus_fw-la ad_fw-la svam_fw-la originem_fw-la censeatur_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v necessary_a that_o every_o kind_n be_v value_v and_o esteem_v according_a unto_o his_o source_n and_o origine_fw-la if_o you_o will_v judge_v of_o water_n mark_v the_o fountain_n if_o you_o will_v know_v a_o man_n gentry_n look_v how_o he_o descend_v from_o the_o first_o of_o his_o family_n if_o you_o will_v inform_v yourself_o of_o any_o man_n title_n unto_o a_o lord_n ship_n you_o must_v consider_v how_o the_o first_o lord_n enter_v in_o to_o possession_n and_o how_o he_o be_v descend_v from_o he_o and_o so_o if_o we_o will_v discern_v the_o true_a christian_a from_o the_o heretic_n we_o must_v have_v a_o eye_n unto_o the_o root_n and_o stock_n from_o which_o he_o descend_v for_o so_o we_o shall_v know_v whether_o he_o be_v legitimate_a or_o bafe-borne_a for_o if_o he_o fetch_v his_o pedigree_n from_o any_o other_o than_o the_o apostle_n or_o those_o which_o by_o succession_n descend_v from_o they_o than_o be_v he_o a_o bastard-christian_a and_o carri_v the_o mark_n of_o a_o heretic_n the_o roman_a and_o catholic_a church_n which_o now_o be_v can_v derive_v her_o pastor_n religion_n and_o government_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n and_o those_o whon_n they_o appoint_v bishop_n and_o successor_n for_o if_o you_o run_v over_o ecclesiastical_a history_n you_o shall_v find_v our_o church_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o our_o religion_n to_o have_v flourish_v from_o the_o beginning_n unto_o these_o day_n for_o they_o treat_v almost_o of_o nothing_o else_o but_o of_o the_o progress_n of_o our_o church_n of_o the_o persecution_n where_o with_o it_o be_v assail_v of_o the_o heretic_n by_o who_o it_o be_v molest_v of_o our_o bishop_n prelate_n ●●artys_n virgin_n doctor_n of_o our_o general_n and_o provincial_a council_n &_o of_o the_o miracle_n which_o be_v wrought_v in_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o so_o much_o that_o if_o our_o matter_n be_v not_o the_o historiographer_n shall_v have_v have_v no_o subject_n to_o work_v or_o write_v on_o 363._o ●_o ●_o c._n 1._o l._n 2._o cont_n donatistas_n open_a 363._o ireneus_fw-la recken_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n from_o saint_n peter_n unto_o eleutherius_fw-la optatus_n unto_o damasus_n saint_n austin_n unto_o anastasius_n mon._n sand_n li_n de_fw-fr vi_fw-la sib_fw-la mon._n other_o go_v far_o and_o doctor_n sanders_n our_o countryman_n bring_v the_o succession_n of_o our_o pope_n bishop_n ceremony_n and_o religion_n unto_o pius_n quintus_fw-la time_n genebrard_n have_v do_v the_o like_a unto_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o his_o time_n annal._n gen._n in_o chronol_n baron_fw-fr in_o annal._n and_o cardinal_n baronius_n in_o nine_o tome_n already_a set_v forth_o have_v most_o exact_o set_v down_o the_o practice_n of_o our_o religion_n unto_o ludovicus_n pius_fw-la of_o france_n and_o if_o our_o church_n aggree_v with_o the_o primative_a church_n if_o our_o faith_n vary_v not_o from_o the_o ancient_a faith_n if_o our_o pastor_n be_v descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o scholar_n as_o all_o history_n and_o monument_n do_v bear_v witness_n then_o must_v our_o church_n need_v be_v the_o true_a church_n because_o it_o aggrege_v with_o the_o original_n and_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o primative_a church_n which_o as_o it_o be_v near_a unto_o christ_n &_o his_o disciple_n and_o be_v persecute_v and_o honour_v for_o the_o true_a church_n so_o be_v it_o like_a to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n unless_o we_o will_v say_v that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n never_o plant_v a_o true_a church_n this_o succession_n be_v count_v alway_n a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o in_o our_o creed_n we_o profess_v 〈…〉_o symb._n 〈…〉_o when_o we_o believe_v in_o the_o apostolical_a church_n to_o wit_n that_o which_o be_v by_o succession_n derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n &_o plant_v by_o they_o and_o the_o want_n of_o it_o be_v alway_n esteem_v a_o note_n to_o know_v
4._o contra_fw-la marcionem_fw-la var_fw-mi l._n 3_o d●_n regist_n c_o 16._o epiph._n har_z 44._o tertulian_n compare_v they_o unto_o wasp_n which_o as_o varro_n witness_v be_v like_a unto_o bee_n and_o singe_v like_o bee_n but_o gather_v nether_a honey_n nor_o wax_v and_o can_v only_o sting_n and_o therefore_o be_v cast_v our_o of_o the_o hive_n but_o be_v cast_v out_o they_o make_v their_o comb_n by_o themselves_o for_o so_o heretic_n be_v baptize_v like_o true_a christian_n carry_v the_o name_n also_o of_o christian_n and_o sing_v also_o like_o they_o ever_o have_v christ_n in_o their_o mouth_n the_o lord_n and_o the_o werd_a but_o they_o have_v nether_a the_o honey_n of_o sweet_a doctrine_n nor_o the_o wax_v of_o good_a work_n only_o they_o can_v sting_n with_o their_o heresy_n &_o blasphemy_n the_o right_a bee_n and_o christian_n and_o therefore_o by_o the_o chief_a pastor_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o master_n be_v they_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o good_a bee_n company_n by_o the_o censure_n of_o excommunication_n and_o be_v cast_v out_o they_o make_v their_o comb_n that_o be_v sect_n a_o part_n which_o they_o also_o fill_v not_o with_o wax_v or_o honey_n but_o with_o the_o poison_n of_o heresy_n if_o therefore_o some_o one_o in_o ingland_n as_o there_o be_v many_o such_o shall_v doubt_v of_o his_o religion_n i_o will_v fain_o know_v to_o w_z ch_o of_o all_o the_o church_n synagogue_n and_o sect_n he_o shall_v repair_v for_o a_o resolution_n if_o he_o demand_v where_o christ_n be_v where_o true_a exposition_n of_o scripture_n be_v where_o true_a faith_n be_v to_o be_v find_v the_o protestaunt_n will_v say_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v find_v amongst_o they_o the_o puritan_n will_v assure_v he_o that_o christ_n be_v with_o they_o no_o will_v the_o brownist_n say_v he_o be_v with_o us._n and_o so_o the_o poor_a man_n shall_v be_v perplex_v and_o doubtful_a to_o which_o party_n he_o shall_v adjoine_v himself_o for_o while_o none_o of_o all_o these_o sect_n and_o sect-master_n can_v prove_v their_o mission_n and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o will_v allege_v scripture_n and_o their_o private_a spirit_n and_o none_o can_v say_v more_o for_o his_o sect_n then_o another_o he_o shall_v be_v in_o doubt_n which_o to_o follow_v because_o one_o have_v no_o more_o reason_n to_o induce_v he_o then_o another_o and_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o follow_v they_o all_o because_o their_o doctrine_n and_o faith_n be_v contrary_a wherefore_o he_o shall_v do_v well_o to_o give_v ear_n to_o none_o of_o they_o but_o rather_o his_o best_a wilbe_n to_o follow_v the_o counsel_n of_o hilarius_n const_n l._n count_n const_n that_o be_v to_o imitate_v the_o mariner_n who_o after_o they_o have_v leave_v the_o haven_n and_o be_v lance_v into_o the_o main_a ocean_n if_o they_o find_v storm_n and_o tempest_n return_v again_o to_o the_o haven_n as_o the_o only_a place_n of_o security_n for_o so_o he_o have_v leave_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o out_o of_o it_o find_v nothing_o but_o storm_n tempest_n and_o contrary_a wind_n of_o opinion_n shall_v return_v again_o to_o the_o same_o church_n as_o the_o only_a peaceble_a and_o quiet_a haven_n where_o be_v no_o dissension_n in_o faith_n but_o all_o peace_n and_o aggreement_n but_o they_o will_v say_v that_o amongst_o we_o also_o be_v great_a dissension_n and_o diverse_a sect_n also_o of_o thomist_n scotist_n nominal_n real_n and_o such_o like_a to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n be_v not_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o in_o certain_a subtlety_n of_o philosophy_n or_o quirk_n of_o school_n divinity_n or_o other_o indifferent_a point_n of_o doctrine_n not_o define_v by_o the_o church_n but_o leave_v to_o the_o free_a censure_n of_o every_o man_n but_o yet_o these_o man_n as_o herein_o they_o show_v themselves_o man_n who_o common_o never_o aggree_v where_o any_o difficulty_n be_v so_o they_o show_v themselves_o christian_n who_o if_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n define_v any_o opinion_n be_v then_o all_o ready_a to_o yield_v and_o aggree_v and_o then_o you_o shall_v see_v how_o in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o faith_n there_o be_v nether_a scotist_n nor_o thomist_n but_o all_o good_a christian_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o great_a unity_n in_o the_o church_n which_o must_v needs_o be_v want_v in_o the_o heretic_n synagogue_n who_o have_v leave_v the_o church_n and_o refuse_v to_o stand_v to_o her_o censure_n have_v nothing_o to_o make_v they_o aggree_v for_o nether_a be_v bare_a scripture_n nor_o the_o private_a spirit_n sufficient_a nether_a have_v they_o any_o visible_a judge_n as_o be_v prove_v and_o so_o while_o amongst_o they_o every_o man_n may_v believe_v as_o he_o list_v they_o must_v needs_o have_v almost_o as_o many_o opinion_n as_o head_n wherefore_o to_o conclude_v see_v that_o in_o the_o catholic_a and_o roman_a church_n be_v such_o peace_n and_o aggreement_n that_o all_o nation_n which_o be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o profess_v the_o same_o faith_n and_o aggree_n all_o in_o one_o religion_n that_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o church_n to_o which_o christe_n bequeath_v his_o peace_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o amongst_o the_o ghospeller_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o daggers-drawing_a and_o wrangle_n in_o religion_n that_o can_v not_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o autour_fw-fr of_o peace_n and_o concord_n but_o rather_o it_o be_v a_o heretical_a synagogue_n and_o they_o if_o ever_o there_o be_v any_o must_v needs_o be_v heretic_n who_n be_v ever_o note_v for_o wrangler_n in_o religion_n the_o seven_o chapter_n contain_v the_o seven_o mark_n of_o a_o heretic_n which_o be_v to_o be_v of_o a_o particular_a sect_n the_o nature_n of_o good_a be_v not_o to_o contain_v itself_o with_o in_o itself_o but_o rather_o to_o impart_v itself_o and_o to_o make_v itself_o common_a unto_o other_o that_o goodly_a planet_n &_o celestial_a body_n the_o son_n which_o be_v the_o light_n and_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n and_o moderator_n of_o time_n and_o season_n be_v not_o content_a to_o abound_v in_o himself_o with_o light_n but_o he_o bestow_v the_o same_o bountiful_o on_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o where_o he_o can_v not_o be_v liberal_a in_o light_n he_o be_v bountiful_a in_o his_o influence_n which_o reach_v even_o to_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o bottom_n of_o the_o sea_n fire_n will_v never_o be_v warm_a alone_o but_o heat_v also_o the_o stander_n by_o the_o fountain_n will_v not_o only_a itself_o be_v full_a but_o run_v over_o to_o water_n the_o field_n meadow_n and_o garden_n the_o sweet_a balm_n or_o odoriferous_a ointment_n contain_v not_o itself_o with_o in_o itself_o no_o not_o with_o in_o the_o box_n but_o perfume_v all_o about_o to_o be_v brief_a there_o be_v no_o good_a which_o be_v not_o good_a to_o other_o and_o herein_o the_o river_n imitate_v their_o fountain_n the_o effect_n their_o cause_n &_o the_o creature_n rather_o resemble_v their_o creator_n then_o attain_v unto_o his_o perfection_n for_o he_o as_o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o goodness_n and_o goodness_n itself_o so_o do_v he_o most_o bountiful_o impart_v this_o his_o goodness_n to_o other_o in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n what_o do_v he_o but_o impart_v himself_o by_o participation_n unto_o all_o his_o creature_n more_o or_o less_o according_a to_o their_o capacity_n but_o above_o all_o in_o the_o incarnation_n he_o have_v show_v himself_o most_o bountiful_a by_o w_z ch_o he_o have_v communicate_v himself_o to_o our_o nature_n not_o by_o participation_n as_o he_o do_v in_o creation_n but_o by_o hypostatical_a uniono_n in_o substance_n and_o person_n and_o because_o in_o man_n as_o in_o a_o little_a world_n all_o thing_n be_v contain_v for_o man_n have_v be_v with_o inanimate_a creature_n life_n vvth_z plant_n feel_v with_o beast_n and_o reason_n with_o angel_n he_o have_v in_o man_n in_o some_o sort_n impart_v he_o self_n to_o all_o creature_n but_o especial_o to_o the_o human_a nature_n of_o christ_n he_o have_v declare_v his_o bounty_n to_o which_o he_o have_v in_o such_o a_o admiral_n sorre_fw-mi unite_v his_o divine_a person_n that_o the_o same_o man_n christ_n jesus_n be_v god_n and_o man_n omnipotent_a immense_a infinite_a and_o enrich_v with_o all_o the_o divine_a attribut_n per_fw-la communicationem_fw-la idiomatum_fw-la wherefore_o since_o the_o time_n or_o christ_n incarnation_n in_o which_o he_o so_o bountiful_o bestow_v himself_o god_n will_v no_o more_o be_v so_o spare_v of_o his_o grace_n as_o to_o conclude_v faith_n and_o salvation_n with_o in_o the_o confine_n of_o judea_n 75._o psal_n 75._o but_o he_o will_v have_v all_o save_v will_v be_v know_v to_o all_o by_o faith_n and_o honour_v of_o all_o by_o religion_n and_o therefore_o now_o he_o have_v
call_v jew_n and_o gentile_a the_o grecian_a and_o the_o barbarous_a and_o all_o nation_n under_o the_o son_n unto_o his_o faith_n church_n and_o religion_n wherefore_o this_o church_n almost_o from_o the_o begin_n even_o when_o it_o be_v confine_v with_o in_o jerusalem_n 2._o act._n 2._o contain_v parthian_n mede_n persian_n mesopotamian_n and_o as_o the_o scripture_n say_v almost_o all_o nation_n under_o the_o son_n and_o when_o the_o holy_a spirit_n descend_v upon_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n in_o fiery_a tongue_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la and_o give_v they_o the_o guifte_n also_o to_o speak_v all_o language_n that_o be_v to_o signify_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o speak_v english_a only_o or_o scotishe_a and_o flemishe_v only_o but_o all_o language_n wherefore_o god_n promise_v our_o saviour_n christ_n that_o he_o will_v give_v he_o not_o england_n only_o not_o scotland_n flanders_n and_o germany_n only_o 2._o psal_n 2._o but_o all_o nation_n for_o his_o inheritance_n 81._o psal_n 71._o psal_n 81._o and_o he_o avouch_v that_o his_o church_n shall_v rule_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o that_o all_o nation_n hall_fw-mi have_v access_n unto_o it_o 28._o mat._n 28._o and_o so_o according_o christ_n give_v authority_n to_o his_o apostle_n to_o preach_v unto_o all_o nation_n whereby_o i_o gather_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v a_o particular_a sect_n confine_v with_o in_o any_o strait_n and_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n but_o rather_o a_o ample_a kingdom_n reach_v over_o all_o the_o world_n niceph._n symb._n apost_n &_o niceph._n and_o this_o we_o profess_v in_o our_o creed_n when_o we_o say_v that_o we_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n for_o catholic_a be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d universal_a ●_o l_o count_n ep_v fundamenti_fw-la c._n ●_o which_o name_n say_v s._n austin_n hold_v i_o in_o the_o church_n and_o why_o because_o he_o know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a church_n which_o never_o yet_o agree_v to_o any_o heretical_a sect_n 7._o ibidem_fw-la &_o li_z de_fw-fr verae_fw-la rel_n c_o ●_o l_o de_fw-fr util_a credendi_fw-la c._n 7._o either_o of_o the_o manichy_n of_o which_o once_o he_o be_v one_o or_o of_o the_o donatist_n or_o pelagian_n or_o any_o other_o and_o this_o say_v saint_n austin_n be_v so_o manifest_a a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o heretic_n themselves_o ambitious_o affect_v the_o same_o but_o yet_o if_o you_o ask_v for_o the_o catholic_a church_n they_o point_v to_o we_o know_v in_o their_o conscience_n that_o we_o only_o be_v in_o deed_n catholic_a 2._o ●●_o ●_o 2._o l._n 2._o and_o so_o saint_n austin_n and_o optatus_n refute_v the_o church_n of_o the_o donatist_n by_o this_o argument_n especial_o because_o it_o be_v confine_v with_o in_o the_o limit_n of_o africa_n and_o pacianus_n say_v that_o so_o soon_o as_o certain_a singular_a sect-master_n devise_v new_a religion_n phr_n ep._n ●_o ad_fw-la so._n phr_n and_o be_v call_v by_o particular_a name_n the_o true_a christian_n to_o distinguishe_v themselves_o from_o particular_a sect_n take_v the_o name_n catholic_a even_o from_o the_o begin_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o creed_n w_o ch_o the_o apostle_n make_v which_o name_n sound_v nether_a of_o martion_n nor_o cerdon_n nor_o apelles_n nor_o valentinus_n nor_o ne●torius_n nor_o arrius_n 1●_n l._n count_n judeos_fw-la c._n 1●_n nor_o luther_n nor_o caluin_n and_o tertulian_n so_o long_o as_o he_o remain_v catholic_a himself_o confess_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v that_o which_o be_v diffuse_v through_o out_o all_o the_o world_n yea_o he_o say_v that_o in_o his_o time_n the_o true_a christian_n not_o withstand_v the_o violence_n of_o persecution_n fill_v the_o pagan_n city_n 37._o apol._n c._n 37._o land_n castle_n court_n senate_n and_o only_o leave_v their_o temple_n to_o themselves_o but_o no_o soon_o be_v this_o man_n become_v a_o heretic_n but_o he_o affirm_v most_o absurd_o that_o the_o church_n may_v consist_v of_o three_o person_n though_o they_o be_v of_o the_o laity_n 21._o li_z the_o exhor_n cast_n c._n 7_o l._n the_o pudic_n c._n 21._o which_o he_o do_v partly_o because_o he_o will_v make_v up_o a_o church_n of_o montanus_n prisca_n and_o maximilla_n to_o who_o he_o have_v unite_v himself_o partly_o to_o deliver_v in_o himself_o from_o the_o name_n of_o a_o heretic_n to_o which_o he_o see_v himself_o subject_a because_o he_o be_v now_o of_o a_o particular_a sect_n so_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v catholic_a that_o be_v a_o society_n profess_v one_o faith_n in_o all_o country_n yea_o and_o age_n also_o ●_o cap._n ●_o according_a to_o that_o of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n in_o ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la tenendum_fw-la quod_fw-la ubique_fw-la quod_fw-la semper_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la creditum_fw-la in_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v which_o every_o where_o always_o and_o of_o all_o have_v be_v believe_v for_o that_o say_v he_o the_o name_n catholic_a import_v now_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o the_o roman_a church_n &_o faith_n or_o rather_o the_o church_n of_o the_o reformer_n be_v the_o catholic_a &_o consequent_o the_o christian_a church_n for_o these_o twoe_n catholic_a &_o christian_a ever_o go_v together_o and_o here_o i_o require_v no_o divine_n nor_o philosopher_n to_o be_v judge_n in_o this_o matter_n only_o let_v i_o have_v man_n that_o have_v ear_n or_o eye_n &_o i_o desire_v no_o more_o for_o the_o eye_n will_v easy_o judge_v whether_o of_o these_o two_o church_n be_v most_o like_a to_o be_v catholic_a the_o roman_a church_n which_o the_o adversary_n call_v papistical_a have_v flourish_v in_o all_o age_n and_o in_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o all_o history_n will_v testify_v and_o now_o at_o this_o day_n our_o faith_n and_o church_n one_o and_o the_o same_o be_v diffuse_v through_o out_o spain_n france_n italy_n portugal_n and_o a_o great_a part_n of_o flanders_n and_o germany_n yea_o it_o reach_v even_o to_o the_o indianes_n and_o other_o new_a find_v country_n convert_v by_o the_o benedictines_n chap._n see_v the_o first_o book_n &_o first_o chap._n jesuite_n and_o other_o religious_a man_n and_o so_o it_o be_v catholic_a because_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o it_o have_v ever_o possess_v all_o age_n &_o country_n and_o still_o do_v even_o to_o this_o day_n as_o for_o the_o reformer_n church_n and_o faith_n i_o see_v no_o sign_n of_o a_o catholic_a church_n in_o it_o for_o first_o it_o begin_v not_o a_o hundred_o year_n since_o chapter_n in_o the_o fifte_a chapter_n as_o before_o be_v demonstrate_v second_o it_o never_o yet_o possess_v the_o whole_a world_n nor_o any_o great_a part_n of_o it_o as_o the_o eye_n will_v bear_v witness_n only_o it_o have_v get_v entertainment_n in_o certain_a part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o england_n scotland_n holland_n and_o some_o canton_n of_o germany_n three_o it_o be_v not_o one_o church_n nor_o faith_n that_o possess_v all_o these_o place_n but_o many_o yea_o scarce_a one_o religion_n fill_v one_o shire_n or_o city_n wherefore_o allthoughe_o england_n be_v all_o the_o world_n and_o this_o age_n all_o age_n yet_o be_v not_o their_o religion_n catholic_a because_o it_o be_v not_o one_o faith_n and_o religion_n in_o all_o the_o shire_n of_o england_n nor_o all_o the_o year_n of_o this_o age_n for_o in_o england_n be_v many_o sect_n and_o religion_n and_o they_o also_o different_a from_o the_o new_a faith_n of_o other_o country_n for_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n betwixt_v they_o and_o the_o lutheran_n in_o germany_n hugonot_n in_o france_n and_o gue_n in_o flanders_n nether_a be_v it_o sufficient_a for_o any_o of_o they_o to_o say_v that_o their_o faith_n be_v catholic_a because_o all_o be_v invite_v to_o it_o and_o command_v to_o accept_v of_o it_o for_o so_o every_o sectmaster_n may_v say_v of_o his_o religion_n and_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n church_n and_o religion_n be_v catholic_a in_o that_o it_o be_v one_o possess_v all_o age_n and_o country_n wherefore_o to_o conclude_v see_v that_o the_o church_n or_o rather_o church_n of_o the_o reformer_n never_o possess_v all_o age_n and_o country_n yea_o never_o one_o and_o the_o same_o fill_v any_o one_o country_n it_o follow_v that_o their_o church_n be_v not_o catholic_a and_n consequent_o not_o the_o true_a christian_a church_n and_o so_o they_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n but_o heretic_n and_o singular_a sectmaster_n if_o ever_o there_o be_v any_o because_o in_o that_o they_o be_v of_o particular_a sect_n they_o wear_v the_o same_o badge_n which_o donatist_n arian_n nestorian_n and_o such_o like_a have_v wear_v before_o they_o and_o for_o which_o they_o
sacrifice_n as_o they_o confess_v that_o they_o have_v not_o and_o in_o deed_n they_o have_v not_o &_o if_o sacrifice_n as_o be_v the_o principal_a office_n of_o religion_n and_o proper_a unto_o god_n as_o be_v prove_v be_v so_o necessary_o require_v that_o without_o it_o regilgion_n can_v in_o no_o wise_a be_v support_v the_o conclusion_n to_o w●hich_v my_o former_a discourse_n drive_v must_v needs_o follow_v to_o wit_n that_o t●e_v reformer_n have_v no_o religion_n because_o no_o sacrifice_n no_o reilgion_n and_o see_v that_o in_o the_o catholic_a and_o roman_a church_n only_o be_v find_v a_o sacrifice_n like_o to_o melchisedechs_n and_o correspondent_a to_o that_o of_o which_o daniel_n and_o malachi_n have_v fortolde_v as_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n and_o the_o same_o which_o christ_n offer_v at_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o command_v to_o be_v offer_v by_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n it_o followethe_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o in_o it_o only_o be_v practise_v true_a faith_n and_o true_a religion_n the_o three_o chapter_n show_v how_o the_o reformer_n amongst_o they_o have_v reject_v all_o the_o sacrament_n and_o so_o can_v have_v no_o religion_n because_o sacrament_n and_o religion_n ever_o go_v to_o together_o it_o be_v a_o common_a opinion_n amongst_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o divine_v that_o since_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n sacrament_n be_v always_o necessary_a partly_o to_o declare_v man_n duty_n towards_o god_n and_o partly_o for_o man_n own_o instruction_n for_o first_o man_n be_v compose_v of_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v to_o serve_v god_n not_o only_o with_o inward_a affection_n but_o also_o by_o outward_a and_o visible_a sign_n second_o because_o he_o be_v to_o receive_v grace_n from_o christ_n against_o the_o malady_n of_o sin_n into_o which_o he_o be_v fall_v he_o be_v also_o to_o profess_v his_o faith_n in_o christ_n from_o who_o this_o grace_n proceed_v and_o to_o acknowledge_v it_o as_o descend_v from_o his_o passion_n by_o visible_a sign_n and_o figure_n such_o as_o abel_n sacrifice_n and_o circumcision_n be_v in_o the_o la_o of_o nature_n and_o such_o as_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n and_o other_o sacrament_n be_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o such_o as_o baptism_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n three_o because_o he_o have_v offend_v god_n by_o use_n of_o corporal_a thing_n it_o be_v convenient_a that_o by_o corporal_a and_o sensible_a sacrament_n and_o by_o the_o religious_a use_n of_o the_o same_o he_o shall_v restore_v god_n his_o honour_n which_o sin_n have_v take_v from_o he_o and_o make_v he_o satisfaction_n by_o such_o thing_n as_o he_o have_v do_v he_o injury_n for_o man_n behalf_n also_o sacrament_n since_o adames_n sin_n be_v always_o requisite_a 3._o gen._n 3._o for_o first_o because_o man_n sin_n proceed_v of_o pride_n and_o a_o desire_n to_o be_v like_a to_o god_n in_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a it_o be_v convenient_a for_o man_n humiliation_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v set_v to_o school_n 6._o prou._n 6._o to_o learn_v not_o only_o of_o the_o ant_n diligence_n and_o of_o other_o brute_n beast_n other_o virtue_n but_o also_o of_o these_o senseless_a creature_n such_o as_o sacrament_n be_v his_o faith_n and_o religion_n wherefore_o as_o the_o paschall_n lamb_n bring_v the_o jew_n into_o a_o grateful_a remembrance_n of_o their_o delivery_n and_o passage_n from_o egipte_n and_o circumcision_n do_v put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o a_o spiritual_a circumcision_n 6._o rom._n 6._o so_o baptism_n set_v before_o our_o eye_n the_o burial_n and_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n for_o when_o the_o infante_n be_v dip_v into_o the_o water_n we_o think_v of_o christ_n burial_n and_o when_o he_o be_v lift_v up_o a_o new_a creature_n regenerate_v to_o a_o new_a life_n we_o call_v to_o mind_n the_o resurrection_n by_o which_o christ_n be_v rise_v to_o a_o new_a and_o a_o immortal_a life_n and_o in_o the_o sacred_a euchariste_n which_o by_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n represent_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o accident_n of_o wine_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n apart_o 26._o mat._n 26._o we_o commemorate_v the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n second_o as_o man_n by_o sin_n have_v prefer_v the_o creature_n before_o the_o creator_n so_o be_v it_o meet_v and_o convenient_a that_o he_o shall_v as_o it_o be_v beg_v grace_n and_o seek_v his_o salvation_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o these_o sensibles_fw-fr sign_n and_o sacrament_n which_o be_v far_o inferior_a unto_o he_o in_o nature_n last_o as_o by_o abuse_n of_o corporal_a creature_n he_o have_v wound_v his_o soul_n by_o sin_n so_o be_v it_o expediente_a that_o by_o use_n of_o the_o same_o his_o disease_n and_o spiritual_a sore_n shall_v be_v recure_v and_o so_o it_o be_v most_o requisite_a that_o christ_n in_o the_o new_a law_n shall_v institute_v sensible_a sign_n and_o sacrament_n 10._o ●i_fw-la 19_o cont_n ●eust_fw-fr c._n 10._o and_o therefore_o saint_n austin_n say_v that_o as_o yet_o never_o any_o society_n can_v join_v in_o one_o religion_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n in_o which_o point_n the_o reformer_n aggree_v whith_fw-mi we_o for_o they_o all_o avouch_v suenkfeldius_n only_a except_v and_o some_o other_o libertine_n that_o sacrament_n be_v necessary_a but_o in_o the_o number_n they_o vary_v not_o only_o from_o the_o catholic_n but_o also_o from_o one_o another_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v ever_o use_v seven_o sacrament_n which_o be_v baptism_n confirmation_n the_o sacramen-of_a the_o altar_n penance_n order_n marriage_n and_o extreme_a unction_n ●_o ●_o p_o q._n 65._o a._n ●_o which_o number_n saint_n thomas_n the_o divine_a prove_v by_o a_o very_a pregnaunte_a reason_n or_o rather_o similitude_n which_o be_v betwixt_v the_o corporal_a &_o spiritual_a life_n of_o man_n for_o in_o our_o corporal_a life_n seven_o thing_n be_v require_v to_o which_o be_v correspondent_a seven_o sacrament_n in_o the_o spiritual_a life_n of_o man_n in_o a_o corporal_a life_n first_o be_v necessary_a generation_n which_o give_v the_o first_o be_v and_o essence_n and_o to_o this_o be_v answerable_a baptism_n which_o regenerate_v we_o again_o unto_o a_o new_a life_n and_o spiritual_a be_v of_o a_o christian_a by_o which_o we_o be_v new_a creature_n bear_v of_o water_n &_o the_o spirit_n unto_o a_o new_a life_n bapt._n io_n 1._o l._n de_fw-fr bapt._n wherefore_o tertulian_n callethe_v christian_n spiritual_a fish_n because_o though_o they_o have_v their_o corporal_a life_n from_o earth_n by_o carnal_a generation_n yet_o their_o spiritual_a life_n and_o be_v like_o fish_n they_o receive_v from_o the_o water_n by_o spiritual_a regeneration_n second_o in_o a_o corporal_a life_n be_v necessary_a augmentation_n by_o which_o the_o little_a infante_n for_o all_o beginning_n be_v little_a wax_v grow_v and_o gain_v due_a proportion_n quantity_n and_o strength_n by_o which_o he_o be_v able_a to_o exercise_v operation_n and_o action_n belong_v to_o corporal_a life_n as_o to_o eat_v drink_n talk_v walk_v labour_n to_o defend_v himself_o and_o to_o assault_v his_o enemy_n and_o to_o this_o be_v correspondent_a the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n which_o perfit_v we_o in_o the_o spiritual_a life_n receive_v in_o baptism_n w_z ch_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o some_o father_n say_v that_o before_o this_o sacrament_n we_o be_v not_o perfect_v christian_n and_o give_v we_o force_n to_o defend_v this_o our_o spiritual_a life_n by_o confess_v our_o faith_n before_o the_o persecutor_fw-la which_o faith_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o spiritual_a life_n three_o because_o this_o corporal_a life_n of_o we_o fade_v &_o diminishethe_v continuay_o for_o every_o hour_n we_o lose_v some_o part_n of_o our_o substance_n partly_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o conflict_n of_o the_o contrary_a element_n which_o consume_v we_o while_o in_o we_o they_o strive_v one_o against_o another_o partly_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o continual_a combat_n which_o be_v betwixt_v natural_a heat_n and_o moisture_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o tallow_v of_o our_o light_n and_o life_n we_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o nurriture_n and_o nutrition_n which_o restore_v that_o substance_n which_o be_v daily_o lose_v and_o so_o prolong_v our_o life_n and_o to_o this_o in_o our_o spiritual_a life_n answer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n 6._o joh_n 6._o which_o contain_v in_o it_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_n call_v himself_o live_v bread_n and_o say_v that_o his_o flesh_n his_o true_o meat_n &_o his_o blood_n true_o drink_v nourishethe_v the_o soul_n spiritual_o and_o conserve_v our_o spiritual_a life_n here_o 6._o io._n 6._o and_o prepare_v we_o to_o a_o immortal_a life_n in_o heaven_n four_o man_n have_v
the_o same_o with_o some_o kind_n of_o religion_n for_o man_n easy_o perceive_v that_o to_o majesty_n power_n and_o excellency_n honour_n be_v a_o dew_a tribute_n and_o by_o good_a consequence_n that_o to_o supreme_a majesty_n power_n and_o excellency_n be_v dew_a also_o supreme_a homage_n and_o religion_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n as_o livy_n report_v 〈◊〉_d l._n 〈◊〉_d that_o rome_n be_v no_o soon_o build_v but_o a_o religion_n also_o be_v establish_v and_o temple_n dedicate_v unto_o the_o god_n 1._o l._n 1._o c._n 1._o for_o which_o devotion_n valerius_n maximus_n commend_v the_o roman_n say_v that_o they_o think_v nothing_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o religion_n but_o that_o rather_o as_o the_o god_n be_v esteem_v above_o their_o senator_n dictatour_n and_o emperor_n so_o religion_n shall_v take_v place_n before_o their_o civil_a law_n &_o custom_n of_o which_o opinion_n plato_n also_o show_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v who_o in_o his_o work_n which_o he_o make_v of_o law_n decree_v some_o for_o government_n and_o policy_n 4_o l._n 4_o other_o for_o religion_n and_o these_o he_o count_v the_o principal_a and_o fundamental_a law_n well_o know_v that_o to_o be_v true_a deorum_fw-la l._n 1._o de_fw-fr nature_n deorum_fw-la which_o cicero_n after_o he_o observe_v that_o if_o once_o piety_n and_o religion_n to_o ward_n god_n be_v take_v a_o way_n fidelity_n and_o justice_n amongst_o man_n can_v not_o long_o continue_v and_o plutarch_n affirm_v that_o you_o shall_v soon_o find_v a_o city_n without_o coin_n wall_n law_n &_o learning_n they_o without_o temple_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o although_o this_o religion_n of_o the_o pagans_n be_v no_o religion_n but_o superstition_n yet_o this_o superstition_n proceed_v by_o abuse_n from_o a_o natural_a inclination_n which_o man_n have_v to_o worship_v and_o honour_v a_o god_n because_o superstition_n and_o religion_n do_v only_o differ_v in_o this_o that_o superstition_n either_o worship_v a_o false_a god_n or_o at_o least_o give_v not_o a_o right_a honour_n unto_o the_o true_a god_n but_o religion_n worshippethe_v the_o true_a god_n and_o not_o with_o a_o vain_a and_o fantastical_a but_o with_o a_o true_a sincere_a and_o reasonable_a worship_n so_o that_o man_n by_o nature_n be_v incline_v to_o religion_n only_o he_o fail_v either_o in_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v or_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o worship_n and_o therefore_o if_o a_o man_n be_v of_o any_o discourse_n able_a to_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n you_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o persuade_v he_o that_o god_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v only_o in_o this_o he_o shall_v need_v your_o help_n what_o be_v this_o god_n and_o with_o what_o worship_n and_o religion_n he_o be_v to_o be_v serve_v and_o herein_o consist_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o controversy_n which_o to_o this_o day_n even_o from_o the_o beginning_n have_v trouble_v the_o world_n &_o the_o great_a wit_n of_o the_o world_n to_o wit_n with_o uhat_o worship_v and_o religion_n god_n be_v to_o be_v serve_v for_o although_o all_o allmoste_o aggree_v in_o this_o that_o god_n be_v religious_o to_o be_v honour_v and_o respect_v as_o the_o diversity_n of_o religion_n which_o possess_v the_o world_n will_v testify_v yet_o in_o the_o other_o point_n to_o wit_n with_o what_o religion_n he_o be_v to_o be_v reverence_v man_n be_v as_o diverse_a as_o there_o be_v diverse_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n wherefore_o here_o may_v i_o take_v occasion_n to_o refure_n the_o religion_n of_o the_o jew_n pagans_n and_o heretic_n by_o many_o argument_n and_o by_o as_o many_o argument_n i_o can_v demonstrate_v the_o catholic_a and_o roman_a faith_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a religion_n which_o i_o have_v do_v in_o my_o commentary_n upon_o secunda_fw-la secundae_fw-la but_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n to_o long_o and_o beside_o my_o purpose_n which_o be_v only_o to_o make_v general_a a_o survey_n and_o examination_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n wherefore_o that_o i_o leave_v to_o other_o and_o peradventure_o to_o some_o other_o book_n which_o if_o this_o be_v well_o accept_v i_o may_v hereafter_o set_v forth_o only_o here_o in_o a_o word_n or_o twoe_n i_o will_v direct_v the_o reader_n to_o certain_a place_n of_o this_o survey_v in_o w_z ch_o upon_o occasion_n i_o have_v disprove_v the_o new_a religion_n and_o establish_v the_o old_a by_o pregnaunte_a reason_n for_o first_o of_o all_o my_o first_o book_n demonstrate_v that_o we_o can_v not_o admit_v nether_a they_o nor_o their_o religion_n for_o good_a and_o lawful_a unless_o we_o bound_v ourselves_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n to_o receve_v all_o heretic_n and_o heresy_n that_o ever_o be_v heretofore_o or_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o yea_o in_o the_o fifte_a chapter_n of_o the_o say_v book_n i_o have_v prove_v the_o catholic_a religion_n to_o be_v the_o only_a religion_n because_o it_o be_v conformable_a to_o that_o which_o be_v so_o strange_o plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n i_o have_v prove_v manifest_o that_o the_o reformer_n have_v no_o probable_a mean_n or_o motive_n to_o induce_v a_o reasonable_a man_n to_o be_v of_o their_o profession_n in_o the_o second_o book_n i_o have_v declare_v how_o the_o mark_n of_o heretic_n aggree_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o therefore_o they_o must_v be_v take_v for_o heretic_n &_o their_o doctrine_n for_o heresy_n if_o arianisme_n or_o any_o other_o such_o like_a doctrine_n be_v just_o so_o to_o be_v censure_v in_o the_o three_o book_n i_o declare_v how_o their_o doctrine_n disgracethe_v christ_n and_o so_o can_v not_o be_v christiane_n religion_n &_o in_o the_o book_n follow_a i_o show_v how_o it_o repugn_v to_o civil_a state_n and_o policy_n how_o iniuriouse_a it_o be_v to_o god_n how_o it_o open_v the_o gap_n unto_o all_o vice_n and_o atheism_n and_o so_o can_v not_o be_v of_o god_n yea_o in_o the_o four_o book_n i_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v no_o religion_n because_o they_o have_v no_o preeste_n nor_o sacrifice_n nor_o prayer_n &_o scarce_o any_o sacrament_n notwithstanding_o that_o these_o thing_n and_o religion_n ever_o go_v together_o second_o in_o the_o allege_v fifte_n chapter_n i_o have_v compare_v our_o ancient_a pastor_n of_o who_o we_o receve_v our_o religion_n with_o their_o new_a minister_n of_o who_o they_o receive_v they_o and_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o our_o pastor_n in_o all_o point_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v and_o consequent_o our_o religion_n three_o in_o the_o second_o book_n and_o fifte_a chapter_n i_o prove_v that_o once_o christian_n religion_n be_v plant_v in_o the_o world_n and_o pastor_n be_v appoint_v i_o have_v prove_v also_o that_o this_o religion_n and_o these_o pastor_n be_v never_o to_o be_v change_v and_o that_o consequent_o that_o now_o be_v the_o true_a church_n &_o religion_n which_o can_v derive_v itself_o by_o a_o continual_a succession_n from_o the_o first_o pastor_n and_o the_o first_o faith_n that_o be_v plant_v and_o practise_v i_o have_v prove_v also_o that_o the_o reformer_n have_v not_o this_o succession_n and_o that_o catholic_n have_v whence_o it_o follow_v evident_o that_o their_o religion_n be_v not_o the_o true_a christian_a religion_n and_o that_o we_o be_v the_o true_a and_o only_a religion_n in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n i_o prove_v that_o in_o christ_n church_n &_o religion_n be_v peace_n and_o unity_n in_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n at_o his_o departure_n bequeath_v to_o his_o church_n &_o i_o have_v demonstrate_v that_o this_o peace_n and_o unity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v amongst_o the_o reformer_n but_o only_o amongst_o catholic_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o catholic_a religion_n be_v the_o only_a christian_a religion_n in_o the_o seventhe_n chapter_n i_o prove_v that_o the_o religion_n of_o true_a christianes_n be_v no_o particular_a sect_n but_o catholic_a and_o universal_a and_o one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o all_o country_n and_o age_n and_o see_v that_o only_o the_o catholic_a religion_n have_v this_o property_n it_o follow_v that_o that_o be_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n so_o that_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o use_v any_o other_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o catholic_a religion_n only_o be_v the_o true_a religion_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n it_o remain_v therefore_o only_o that_o i_o now_o declare_v how_o the_o reformer_n open_v the_o gap_n to_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o atheism_n which_o be_v irreligiositie_n and_o contempt_n of_o all_o religion_n and_o because_o this_o conclusion_n be_v often_o time_n to_o be_v infer_v out_o of_o other_o point_n of_o their_o doctrine_n in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v i_o content_v myself_o in_o this_o chapter_n with_o their_o doctrine_n allege_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n and_o out_o of_o that_o only_o i_o will_v deduce_v my_o
will_n with_o any_o reason_n persuade_v i_o to_o be_v either_o turk_n or_o jewe_a i_o may_v by_o authority_n be_v of_o no_o religion_n and_o thus_o atheism_n must_v needs_o follow_v division_n in_o religion_n &_o contempt_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o sixth_o chapter_n show_v how_o their_o want_n of_o a_o visible_a head_n givethe_v a_o great_a advantage_n to_o atheist_n and_o such_o as_o mock_v at_o all_o religion_n in_o the_o first_o book_n and_o last_o chapter_n i_o have_v declare_v at_o large_a how_o necessary_a a_o visible_a head_n be_v in_o all_o society_n and_o especial_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o i_o have_v also_o demonstrate_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o visible_a head_n in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o reformer_n whence_o i_o have_v infer_v that_o amongst_o they_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o everye_o heretic_n to_o preach_v what_o doctrine_n he_o will_v and_o no_o man_n shall_v control_v he_o now_o i_o be_o to_o deduce_v another_o conclusion_n to_o wit_n that_o thus_o also_o the_o gate_n and_o gap_n be_v open_v unto_o atheist_n and_o godless_a and_o irreligious_a person_n which_o i_o can_v do_v easy_o and_o will_v do_v in_o a_o word_n for_o if_o a_o visible_a head_n be_v want_v every_o man_n may_v preach_v and_o embrace_v what_o religion_n he_o will_v as_o in_o the_o allege_v place_n i_o have_v prove_v and_o see_v that_o if_o this_o head_n be_v want_v there_o be_v no_o certainty_n for_o any_o religion_n but_o only_o the_o private_a spirit_n and_o bare_a scripture_n which_o be_v altogether_o uncertain_a 2.3_o in_o the_o first_o book_n ch_n 2.3_o as_o before_o be_v prove_v it_o will_v follow_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v have_v no_o more_o reason_n to_o embrace_v one_o religion_n they_o another_o yea_o he_o shall_v have_v no_o probable_a reason_n to_o induce_v he_o to_o any_o religion_n at_o all_o and_o consequentlye_o he_o may_v take_v good_a leave_n to_o be_v of_o no_o religion_n and_o thus_o he_o may_v argue_v in_o form_n and_o figure_n if_o there_o be_v no_o visible_a head_n to_o determine_v by_o authority_n what_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v embrace_v every_o man_n may_v be_v of_o what_o religion_n he_o will_v and_o no_o man_n can_v control_v he_o and_o so_o i_o also_o may_v use_v my_o liberty_n in_o choose_v my_o religion_n as_o well_o as_o another_o and_o see_v that_o if_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o visible_a head_n be_v lay_v a_o side_n i_o have_v no_o more_o reason_n to_o be_v of_o one_o religion_n then_o another_o because_o all_o religion_n allege_v the_o same_o reason_n which_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o wit_n bare_a scripture_n sense_v by_o the_o private_a spirit_n and_o i_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v of_o all_o because_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o one_o another_o i_o may_v by_o good_a reason_n refuse_v to_o be_v of_o any_o religion_n and_o no_o man_n can_v control_v i_o for_o it_o if_o there_o be_v no_o visible_a head_n who_o can_v prove_v that_o he_o have_v authority_n to_o determine_v of_o religion_n and_o so_o he_o that_o forsake_v the_o catholic_a church_n where_o only_o this_o visible_a head_n be_v to_o be_v find_v have_v leave_v and_o licence_n to_o be_v of_o what_o religion_n he_o will_v yea_o to_o be_v of_o no_o religion_n at_o all_o because_o leave_v that_o he_o have_v no_o more_o reason_n to_o be_v of_o one_o religion_n then_o another_o because_o he_o have_v no_o other_o reason_n then_o bare_a scripture_n sense_v by_o a_o private_a spirit_n which_o be_v not_o sufficient_a as_o be_v prove_v in_o my_o first_o book_n and_o three_o chapter_n yea_o leave_v the_o catholic_a church_n he_o can_v not_o have_v any_o probable_a reason_n to_o induce_v he_o to_o any_o of_o these_o new_a religion_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o my_o first_o book_n and_o fifte_a chapter_n and_o see_v that_o god_n nether_a can_v nor_o will_v command_v he_o to_o be_v of_o a_o religion_n for_o which_o he_o see_v no_o reason_n nor_o motive_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o induce_v a_o reasonable_a man_n as_o in_o the_o same_o place_n be_v prove_v he_o may_v with_o reason_n after_o he_o have_v leave_v the_o catholic_a church_n join_v with_o atheist_n who_n be_v of_o no_o religion_n the_o seven_o chapter_n show_v how_o the_o reformer_n in_o denial_n of_o the_o real_a praesence_n do_v ruin_n christian_n religion_n and_o call_v all_o the_o other_o mystery_n of_o faith_n in_o question_n sacrifice_n be_v a_o thing_n so_o high_o please_v and_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n that_o he_o will_v have_v none_o to_o be_v partaker_n with_o he_o in_o such_o honour_n but_o reserve_v it_o as_o a_o homage_n due_v only_o to_o himself_o and_o proper_a to_o a_o divine_a majesty_n 15._o 1._o reg._n 15._o yet_o obedience_n be_v more_o grateful_a unto_o he_o than_o all_o the_o hecatomb_n and_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o world_n because_o by_o sacrifice_n we_o consecrate_v unto_o his_o service_n the_o life_n and_o substance_n of_o brute_n beast_n but_o by_o obedience_n we_o make_v a_o burnt-offering_a and_o holocaust_n of_o our_o own_o soul_n resign_v our_o desire_n and_o will_n yea_o our_o own_o self_n whole_o unto_o his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n but_o while_o this_o obedience_n rest_v in_o the_o will_n though_o it_o be_v very_o meritorious_a yet_o have_v it_o not_o the_o full_a complement_n of_o perfection_n because_o so_o long_o as_o the_o will_n have_v reason_n to_o persuade_v she_o the_o less_o thanks_n she_o deserve_v for_o obey_v but_o when_o this_o virtue_n reachethe_v to_o the_o understanding_n and_o make_v reason_n against_o sense_n and_o above_o reason_n to_o yield_v to_o more_o than_o reason_n can_v reach_v unto_o then_o have_v this_o virtue_n the_o top_n of_o her_o perfection_n but_o this_o perfection_n she_o have_v not_o of_o herself_o because_o of_o herself_o she_o can_v only_o submit_v the_o will_n unto_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o superior_a but_o she_o be_v fain_o to_o borrow_v so_o much_o of_o the_o theological_a virtue_n call_v faith_n who_o property_n be_v to_o make_v the_o very_a understanding_n to_o stoop_v &_o without_o any_o reason_n to_o yield_v to_o thing_n for_o which_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n because_o they_o be_v above_o reason_n many_o such_o thing_n there_o be_v in_o christian_a faith_n which_o seem_v to_o sense_n senseless_a to_o reason_v unreasonable_a and_o to_o human_a faith_n incredible_a and_o as_o far_o as_o man_n reason_n can_v see_v even_o to_o divine_a power_n impossible_a amongst_o the_o which_o three_o be_v the_o most_o principal_a and_o to_o human_a reason_n most_o incredible_a to_o wit_n the_o trinity_n in_o w_z ch_o we_o believe_v that_o three_o be_v one_o that_o be_v that_o three_o person_n be_v one_o god_n the_o incarnation_n in_o w_z ch_o we_o confess_v that_o twoe_n be_v one_o that_o be_v twoe_n nature_n in_o christ_n the_o one_o divine_a the_o other_o human_a be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n in_o which_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n word_n be_v change_v into_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o that_o one_o body_n be_v not_o only_o in_o one_o but_o in_o diverse_a place_n at_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o time_n but_o as_o these_o three_o be_v the_o hard_a to_o conceve_v of_o all_o the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a faith_n so_o have_v our_o bless_a saviour_n give_v we_o more_o plain_a and_o evident_a testimony_n of_o they_o in_o his_o holy_a write_v then_o of_o any_o other_o which_o be_v more_o easy_o to_o be_v conceve_v for_o the_o bless_a trinity_n what_o more_o pregnant_a proof_n can_v we_o desire_v than_o we_o have_v in_o saint_n matthew_n go_v therefore_o teach_v you_o all_o nation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n ult._n cap._n ult._n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n where_o the_o ancient_a father_n note_n that_o three_o be_v name_v to_o signify_v three_o distinct_a person_n and_o yet_o christ_n bid_v his_o apostle_n to_o baptise_v in_o the_o name_n not_o name_n of_o these_o three_o to_o signify_v that_o these_o three_o be_v one_o god_n and_o that_o the_o father_n be_v god_n every_o leaf_n almost_o of_o scripture_n do_v testify_v that_o the_o son_n be_v god_n many_o place_n most_o manifestlye_o do_v bear_n witness_v ●_o rom._n 1.9_o tit._n 2.3_o juda_n 2._o mat._n 1●_n act._n ●_o &_o testimony_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n s._n peter_n aver_v who_o have_v demand_v of_o ananias_n the_o reason_n why_o he_o will_v lie_v unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n avouch_v that_o he_o lie_v not_o to_o man_n but_o to_o god_n wherefore_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o we_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o see_v that_o to_o god_n only_a temple_n be_v erect_v if_o we_o be_v his_o temple_n
and_o wish_v for_o saint_n austin_n her_o son_n conversion_n who_o then_o be_v a_o manichee_n filius_fw-la tantarum_fw-la lachrimarum_fw-la perire_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la i_o may_v say_v of_o your_o highness_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o son_n of_o such_o a_o mother_n and_o prince_n of_o such_o a_o princess_n and_o inheritor_n of_o such_o virtue_n such_o example_n such_o tear_n such_o wis_n his_fw-mi can_v never_o perish_v that_o be_v can_v not_o but_o be_v a_o catholic_n this_o her_o zeal_n towards_o religion_n these_o her_o desire_n &_o wish_n these_o her_o prayer_n and_o tear_n and_o above_o all_o her_o glorious_a martyrdom_n will_v ever_o be_v before_o your_o grace_n eye_n to_o move_v your_o heart_n if_o not_o to_o admit_v whole_o the_o catholic_a religion_n at_o least_o to_o permit_v it_o at_o least_o not_o to_o persecute_v it_o which_o she_o love_v her_o self_n so_o well_o and_o wish_v to_o your_o highness_n so_o hearty_o and_o true_o most_o gracious_a liege_n such_o be_v our_o repose_n in_o your_o goodness_n that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o motive_n than_o your_o glorious_a mother_n example_n your_o catholic_a subject_n misery_n and_o your_o own_o innate_a clemency_n we_o will_v not_o at_o all_o despair_n of_o a_o grant_n of_o our_o petition_n but_o see_v that_o the_o thing_n we_o request_v concern_v not_o only_o our_o good_a but_o your_o grace_n honour_n also_o and_o the_o true_a felicity_n of_o your_o kingdom_n we_o hope_v confident_o not_o to_o suffer_v a_o repulse_n in_o that_o in_o which_o your_o highness_n also_o have_v a_o part_n and_o for_o which_o not_o only_o we_o be_v humble_a suppliaunte_n but_o yourself_o also_o to_o your_o self_n and_o for_o yourself_o be_v a_o intercessor_n and_o first_o he_o grant_v of_o our_o petition_n shall_v be_v most_o honourable_a for_o your_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n king_n lucius_n be_v the_o first_o king_n christian_n of_o our_o country_n and_o the_o first_o king_n that_o labour_v in_o the_o conversion_n of_o it_o with_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la by_o who_o counsel_n and_o preacher_n which_o he_o send_v he_o extirpated_a idolatry_n and_o plant_v christian_a religion_n and_o for_o this_o glorious_a fact_n his_o name_n and_o fame_n be_v and_o ever_o shall_v be_v most_o renowned_a both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n king_n ethelbert_n be_v the_o second_v king_n who_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o pope_n gregory_n by_o pope_n always_o country_n have_v be_v convert_v and_o twelue_v monk_n of_o saint_n benedicte_v order_n the_o second_o time_n restore_v this_o country_n again_o unto_o the_o same_o christiane_n and_o catholic_a religion_n the_o which_o by_o the_o invasion_n of_o the_o saxon_n be_v again_o become_v idolatricall_a and_o pagane_n and_o he_o be_v no_o less_o glorious_a before_o god_n and_o man_n for_o so_o honourable_a a_o enterprise_n but_o if_o your_o highness_n shall_v be_v the_o three_o king_n who_o shalle_v again_o reduce_v this_o country_n to_o the_o same_o ancient_a religion_n you_o shall_v be_v as_o much_o more_o glorious_a and_o your_o name_n as_o much_o more_o renowned_a 2.2.4.10.4.6_o the_o 2.2.4.10.4.6_o as_o heresy_n be_v worse_a than_o paganism_n and_o more_o hardly_o extinguish_v william_n the_o conqueror_n from_o who_o your_o majesty_n be_v worthy_o descend_v be_v reckon_v amongst_o the_o worthy_n of_o the_o world_n and_o write_v in_o the_o list_v and_o catalogue_n of_o the_o most_o warlike_a king_n for_o that_o famous_a conquest_n which_o he_o make_v of_o your_o little_a world_n but_o if_o your_o highness_n shall_v get_v the_o conquest_n of_o heresy_n your_o honour_n shall_v be_v as_o far_o more_o great_a than_o he_o as_o the_o conquest_n of_o man_n soul_n and_o mind_n be_v more_o glorious_a then_o subdue_v of_o body_n in_o such_o a_o conquest_n the_o war_n be_v christ_n the_o victory_n be_v he_o and_o you_o the_o crown_n you_o only_a not_o in_o earth_n only_o but_o in_o heaven_n also_o you_o have_v the_o occasion_n offer_v o_o mighty_a prince_n by_o which_o you_o may_v make_v your_o name_n and_o fame_n immortal_a let_v not_o such_o a_o opportunity_n pass_v if_o you_o can_v achieve_v so_o glorious_a a_o conquest_n as_o you_o can_v if_o you_o will_v because_o the_o body_n of_o your_o realm_n will_v follow_v the_o will_n of_o their_o head_n you_o shall_v be_v more_o glorious_a than_o all_o the_o king_n of_o england_n before_o you_o if_o it_o please_v your_o majesty_n to_o set_v before_o your_o eye_n those_o glorious_a champion_n of_o the_o church_n constantine_n theodosius_n pepine_n charles_n all_o surname_v great_a more_o glorious_a for_o their_o victory_n over_o heresy_n and_o idolatry_n then_o for_o conquest_n of_o country_n more_o renown_v for_o propagate_a the_o ancient_a catholic_a religion_n for_o it_o be_v not_o lutheranisme_n nor_o caluinisme_n which_o they_o promote_v then_o for_o enlarge_a their_o dominion_n you_o will_v easy_o perce●e_v that_o it_o be_v much_o great_a honour_n for_o your_o highness_n to_o consort_n with_o they_o rather_o than_o with_o constantius_n and_o valens_n those_o ariane_n emperor_n enemy_n to_o that_o church_n which_o they_o defend_v &_o enrich_v and_o leo_n isauricus_n &_o constantinus_n copronymus_n those_o infamous_a image_n breaker_n and_o if_o you_o please_v to_o call_v to_o mind_n the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o noble_a king_n of_o england_n lucius_n ethelbert_n egbert_n oswald_v oswine_v alfred_n and_o many_o other_o before_o the_o conquest_n with_o william_n the_o conqueror_n and_o so_o many_o henry_n edward_n and_o richard_n after_o the_o conquest_n all_o your_o noble_a predecessor_n so_o mighty_a in_o force_n so_o rich_a in_o treasure_n so_o noble_a of_o birth_n so_o fortunate_a in_o war_n so_o courageous_a in_o fight_n so_o glorious_a in_o victory_n so_o wise_a in_o government_n so_o just_a in_o punish_v so_o mercitall_n in_o pardon_v so_o upright_o in_o life_n so_o zealous_a in_o religion_n who_o build_v so_o many_o goodly_a monastery_n erect_v so_o stately_a church_n found_v so_o learned_a college_n enact_v so_o wholesome_a law_n and_o wise_a statute_n and_o get_v so_o many_o and_o so_o strange_a victory_n in_o france_n and_o other_o country_n even_o unto_o palestine_n your_o princely_a wisdom_n will_v easy_o see_v that_o great_a wilbee_n your_o honour_n to_o joiney_v ourself_o to_o these_o worthy_n then_o to_o stand_v so_o naked_o accompany_v with_o three_o only_a of_o your_o predecessor_n who_o have_v protect_v the_o new_a religion_n and_o ruin_v what_o they_o have_v build_v whereof_o the_o first_o be_v not_o whole_o for_o the_o new_a religion_n because_o by_o parliament_n he_o enact_v six_o catholic_a article_n and_o at_o his_o death_n found_v a_o mass_n for_o his_o soul_n the_o second_o be_v so_o young_a that_o he_o be_v rather_o overrule_v they_o rule_v the_o last_o be_v but_o a_o woman_n and_o though_o they_o want_v not_o gift_n of_o nature_n which_o may_v beseem_v princely_a authority_n yet_o for_o persecute_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o follow_a other_o path_n than_o their_o predecessor_n have_v tread_v their_o name_n be_v not_o eternize_v with_o that_o immortal_a fame_n which_o their_o predecessor_n have_v purchase_v by_o their_o religious_a act_n second_o redoubt_a prince_n the_o catholic_a religion_n wilbe_n great_a security_n for_o you_o temporal_a state_n for●_n your_o highness_n dare_v rely_v upon_o they_o who_o by_o religion_n 27._o cal._n l._n 3._o inst_z c._n 19_o §._o 14._o l_o 4._o ●_o to_o §_o 5.23_o 27._o may_v disobey_v you●_n law_n and_o ordinance_n as_o i_o have_v in_o my_o sixth_o book_n demonstrate_v much_o mor●_n may_v you_o put_v your_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o your_o catholic_a subject_n who_o conscience_n and_o religion_n bind_v to_o obedience_n for_o they_o be_v teach_v by_o religion_n that_o authority_n be_v of_o god_n 13._o 1._o pet._n 2._o rons_n 13._o and_o that_o in_o conscience_n they_o be_v subject_a unto_o it_o and_o bind_v to_o obey_v king_n though_o otherwise_o difficile_a and_o hard_a to_o please_v not_o only_o for_o fear_n but_o for_o conscience_n also_o and_o this_o obedience_n they_o give_v not_o only_o to_o christian_a but_o also_o to_o pagane_n king_n such_o as_o all_o be_v when_o saint_n peter_n and_o saint_n paul_n command_v we_o to_o obey_v they_o eus_n e●_n eus_n we_o be_v teach_v say_v saint_n policarpe_n to_o the_o proconsul_n to_o give_v to_o high_a power_n that_o honour_n which_o be_v dew_a to_o they_o and_o not_o hurtful_a to_o us._n apulan_o apol._n c._n 3._o &_o 〈◊〉_d s._n apulan_o we_o say_v tertulian_n to_o the_o ethnike_v pray_v for_o the_o emperor_n and_o reverence_v he_o next_o to_o god_n and_o more_o than_o we_o do_v your_o god_n to_o be_v brief_a as_o i_o shall_v be_v with_o a_o king_n if_o the_o matter_n do_v not_o enforce_v i_o to_o be_v long_o than_o i_o shall_v be_v give_v we_o say_v saint_n austin_n such_o judge_n such_o magistrate_n
himself_o unto_o his_o creature_n but_o that_o some_o time_n extraordinarilie_o he_o work_v by_o himself_o without_o any_o concurrence_n of_o they_o as_o he_o do_v when_o with_o a_o word_n or_o touch_v he_o restore_v health_n which_o ordinary_o he_o do_v by_o physician_n and_o second_o cause_n so_o likewise_o ordinary_o god_n send_v pastor_n and_o preacher_n and_o give_v they_o authority_n by_o other_o yet_o sometime_o also_o extraordinarilie_o he_o send_v they_o immediate_o from_o he_o self_n as_o for_o example_n moses_n and_o aaron_n in_o the_o old_a law_n be_v send_v immediate_o from_o god_n to_o recall_v his_o people_n out_o of_o egypt_n and_o to_o rule_v and_o govern_v they_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n but_o the_o high_a preeste_n which_o succeed_v aaron_n and_o be_v consecrate_v by_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n be_v send_v by_o a_o ordinary_a mission_n in_o like_a manner_n in_o the_o new_a law_n saint_n peter_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v call_v and_o send_v extraordinarilie_o &_o immediate_o from_o christ_n but_o they_o which_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n and_o be_v ordain_v by_o they_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o other_o ceremony_n be_v send_v by_o a_o ordinary_a mission_n because_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whem_o he_o institute_v his_o apostle_n do_v also_o appoint_v a_o continual_a order_n by_o which_o other_o shall_v succeed_v they_o in_o their_o office_n which_o be_v imposition_n of_o hand_n by_o a_o bishop_n lawful_o consecrate_v and_o so_o the_o bishop_n which_o now_o be_v may_v true_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v send_v from_o christ_n to_o rule_v &_o govern_v his_o church_n because_o they_o be_v consecrate_v &_o institute_v by_o the_o order_n which_o christ_n have_v appoint_v and_o they_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n who_o christ_n immediate_o send_v to_o preach_v teach_v and_o minister_v sacrament_n now_o betwixt_v these_o twoe_n mission_n this_o amongst_o other_o be_v one_o difference_n that_o a_o extraordinary_a mission_n must_v be_v prove_v by_o miracle_n or_o plain_a prophecy_n else_o every_o one_o may_v brag_v that_o he_o be_v send_v extraordinarilie_o and_o no_o man_n shall_v control_v he_o but_o a_o ordinary_a mission_n need_v no_o such_o proof_n and_o therefore_o he_o who_n be_v send_v by_o a_o ordinary_a mission_n if_o he_o can_v show_v that_o he_o be_v institute_v by_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n which_o christ_n have_v leave_v in_o his_o church_n and_o that_o he_o succede_v they_o who_n be_v count_v lawful_a pastor_n and_o preacher_n he_o give_v sufficient_a testimony_n of_o his_o ordinary_a mission_n &_o commission_n if_o then_o our_o new_a preacher_n be_v send_v by_o a_o ordinary_a mission_n le●t_v they_o show_v their_o succession_n &_o tell_v we_o the_o pedigree_n of_o their_o predecessor_n that_o we_o may_v see_v who_n be_v bishop_n before_o they_o and_o who_n consecrate_v and_o institute_v they_o and_o who_n give_v they_o commission_n and_o authority_n to_o intermeddle_v in_o the_o rule_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n for_o so_o christ_n ordinary_o send_v preacher_n &_o pastor_n to_o his_o church_n 38._o ●_o prescr_n c._n 38._o thus_o turtullian_n urge_v the_o heretic_n of_o his_o tyme._n let_v they_o say_v he_o show_v we_o the_o origin_n of_o their_o church_n let_v they_o unfold_v the_o order_n of_o their_o bishope_n which_o by_o successor_n so_o run_v on_o from_o the_o beginning_n that_o the_o first_o bishop_n have_v for_o his_o autour_fw-fr and_o predecessor_n some_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a man_n which_o live_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n etc._n etc._n as_o the_o church_n of_o the_o smyrnean_o do_v register_v polycarpe_n place_v by_o ●hon_n as_o the_o church_n of_o the_o roman_n have_v clement_a ordain_v by_o peter_n etc._n etc._n to_o this_o proof_n s._n augustine_n put_v the_o heretic_n of_o his_o age_n ●donati_n e●n_n partem_fw-la ●donati_n number_n say_v he_o the_o preeste_n even_o from_o peter_n seat_n and_o look_v which_o to_o which_o succeed_v in_o the_o order_n of_o those_o ffather_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v that_o this_o succession_n of_o preeste_n be_v the_o thing_n 4._o count_n ep_v fundamenti_fw-la c._n 4._o which_o hold_v he_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n because_o he_o know_v that_o there_o be_v the_o true_a church_n where_o be_v true_a religion_n there_o true_a religion_n where_o true_a pastor_n to_o teach_v it_o and_o there_o true_a pastor_n where_o one_o succede_v to_o another_o by_o a_o ordinary_a succession_n and_o thus_o we_o must_v urge_v our_o new_a reformer_n to_o declare_v unto_o we_o the_o pedegres_n of_o their_o ancetour_n &_o to_o show_v who_o be_v the_o predecessor_n to_o who_o they_o be_v successor_n if_o they_o will_v have_v we_o to_o admit_v they_o as_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n send_v by_o a_o ordinary_a mission_n but_o this_o they_o can_v never_o do_v for_o who_n i_o pray_v yond_o be_v the_o immediate_a predecessor_n of_o luther_n and_o caluin_n or_o whoe_fw-mi be_v he_o that_o make_v the_o first_o superintendent_n in_o inglande_n i_o be_o sure_a and_o all_o the_o world_n yea_o they_o themselves_o will_v witness_v that_o they_o be_v no_o successor_n to_o the_o catholic_a bislope_n and_o pastor_n because_o they_o degenerate_a from_o they_o altoge-th_a and_o they_o be_v fain_o to_o contemn_v &_o disobey_v they_o before_o they_o can_v open_v their_o mouth_n in_o pulpite_n yea_o our_o pastor_n be_v so_o far_o from_o ordain_v they_o or_o institute_v they_o &_o give_v they_o authority_n that_o they_o cry_v out_o against_o they_o as_o new_a startuppe_n condemn_v they_o for_o heretic_n antipastour_n and_o new_a yea_o false_a apostle_n nether_a can_v they_o derive_v themselves_o from_o any_o other_o lawful_a pastor_n for_o before_o they_o themselves_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o name_n and_o office_n of_o pastor_n there_o be_v none_o at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o rise_n but_o our_o catholic_a pastor_n yea_o as_o in_o the_o next_o book_n be_v prove_v they_o can_v de●ive_v their_o descente_fw-la from_o ancient_a heretic_n because_o in_o all_o point_n they_o agree_v not_o with_o any_o of_o they_o and_o if_o they_o can_v yet_o be_v not_o that_o sufficiet_fw-la for_o they_o be_v count_v &_o conden_v for_o arrant_a heretic_n and_o intrude_v themselves_o as_o these_o man_n do_v into_o the_o true_a pastor_n office_n &_o be_v themselves_o as_o these_o man_n be_v the_o first_o of_o their_o family_n succeed_v to_o no_o predecessor_n here_o they_o find_v themselves_o much_o press_v &_o know_v not_o i_o dare_v say_v what_o to_o answer_v but_o yet_o they_o will_v play_v smalle_n play_v rather_o than_o sirte_n out_o and_o will_v make_v hard_a shift_n rather_o than_o no_o shift_n and_o shape_v a_o misshape_a answer_v rather_o than_o no_o answer_v and_o what_o be_v that_o they_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n have_v for_o a_o time_n ●heir_o lawful_a successor_n but_o at_o the_o length_n the_o church_n fail_v and_o the_o pastor_n with_o it_o &_o with_o they_o the_o succession_n decay_v but_o yet_o afterward_o luther_n &_o caluin_n reviue_v this_o dead_a church_n again_o &_o restore_v the_o pastor_n and_o so_o say_v they_o we_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n and_o their_o immediate_a successor_n but_o by_o interruption_n of_o many_o hundred_o year_n but_o this_o god_n know_v be_v a_o poor_a shift_n &_o a_o stale_a shift_n for_o this_o be_v the_o answer_v of_o the_o heretic_n of_o tertullians_n time_n against_o who_o he_o use_v no_o other_o argument_n than_o the_o absurdity_n which_o follow_v so_o absurd_a a_o answer_v prese_n l._n prese_n then_o say_v he_o truth_o which_o be_v imprison_v expect_v marcionite_n her_o redeemer_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n pastout_v preach_v false_o and_o the_o christian_n belecue_v erroniouslie_o many_o thousand_o be_v wronglie_o baptize_v so_o many_o work_n of_o faith_n minister_v a_o miss_n so_o many_o chrisme_n evillie_o wrought_v so_o many_o preest-hoode_n and_o ministeres_n not_o right_o do_v so_o many_o martyrdoome_n all_o invayne_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v against_o luther_n zuinglin_n caluine_n and_o other_o new_a apostle_n of_o this_o time_n if_o the_o church_n fail_v before_o your_o come_n than_o she_o expect_v many_o hundred_o year_n for_o you_o in_o particular_a than_o all_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n be_v all_o this_o while_n wrong_n preach_v &_o teach_v be_v false_a they_o who_o boar_n the_o name_n of_o true_a pastor_n be_v not_o so_o that_o society_n which_o be_v disperse_v throughout_o the_o world_n &_o be_v count_v the_o only_a christian_n church_n and_o be_v persecute_v for_o the_o same_o by_o the_o devil_n &_o his_o minister_n be_v a_o synagogue_n of_o the_o devil_n establish_v and_o uphold_v by_o the_o devil_n &_o so_o one_o devil_n psecute_v another_o all_o martyrdom_n in_o that_o
dull_a pate_n and_o such_o like_a name_n for_o press_v he_o with_o the_o authority_n of_o father_n thus_o he_o decide_v the_o matter_n hencricus_n dicta_fw-la patrum_fw-la inducit_fw-la pro_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la missario_fw-la etc._n etc._n henry_n for_o his_o mass_a sacrifice_n bring_v in_o the_o say_n of_o father_n here_o say_v i_o that_o by_o this_o mean_n my_o sentence_n be_v confirm_v for_o this_o be_v it_o which_o i_o say_v that_o the_o thomisticall_a ass_n have_v nothing_o which_o they_o can_v allege_v but_o a_o multitude_n of_o man_n and_o the_o ancient_a use_n but_o i_o against_o the_o say_n of_o father_n man_n angel_n and_o devil_n put_v down_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o eternal_a majesty_n here_o i_o insult_v over_o the_o say_n of_o man_n though_o never_o so_o holy_a so_o that_o i_o care_v not_o though_o a_o thousand_o austin_n and_o ciprianes_n shall_v stand_v against_o i_o thus_o one_o martin_n luther_n brave_v they_o all_o &_o thus_o this_o good_a child_n reverence_v and_o respect_v his_o ancient_a father_n for_o as_o i_o say_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n although_o he_o seem_v only_o to_o prefer_v the_o scripture_n yet_o see_v that_o they_o admit_v and_o allege_v scripture_n also_o the_o question_n be_v who_n have_v better_a skill_n in_o expound_v scripture_n and_o if_o we_o believe_v this_o man_n all_o the_o father_n may_v have_v go_v to_o school_v to_o he_o 167._o in_o expos_fw-la a._n 6●_n fol._n 167._o zuinglius_fw-la will_v not_o be_v behind_o luther_n in_o this_o matter_n they_o affirm_v say_v he_o and_o we_o deny_v that_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n who_o shall_v be_v judge_n of_o this_o controversy_n the_o sole_a say_v i_o and_o the_o only_a word_n of_o god_n but_o by_o and_o by_o thou_o begin_v to_o cry_v the_o father_n the_o father_n have_v thus_o deliver_v unto_o us._n but_o i_o bring_v to_o thou_o not_o father_n nor_o mother_n but_o ●_o require_v the_o word_n of_o god_n caluine_n desire_v to_o be_v count_v modest_a but_o herein_o also_o he_o can_v not_o contain_v himself_o 10._o l._n ●_o inst_z ca._n 8._o ●_o 10._o when_o the_o adversary_n object_n to_o i_o say_v he_o that_o this_o be_v the_o cusstome_n i_o answerre_v that_o the_o old_a father_n in_o this_o matter_n want_v both_o la_o and_o exemple_n &_o be_v carry_v away_o into_o a_o error_n while_o they_o attribute_v to_o much_o to_o the_o name_n of_o poenaunce_n and_o the_o common_a people_n opinion_n 10._o and_o again_o i_o be_o little_o move_v with_o those_o thing_n which_o occur_v cuery_n where_o in_o the_o write_n of_o father_n concern_v satisfaction_n i_o see_v true_o many_o of_o they_o yea_o i_o will_v speak_v simple_o as_o it_o be_v all_o almost_o of_o they_o who_o book_n be_v extant_a be_v in_o this_o matter_n dece●ued_v and_o speak_v hardly_o and_o in_o another_o book_n of_o his_o he_o call_v the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n hog_n &_o ass_n ●_o in_o antid_v can_v ●_o peter_n martyr_n call_v papist_n patrologos_n not_o theologos_fw-la votis_fw-la 〈◊〉_d votis_fw-la for_o allege_v father_n doctor_n humphrey_n in_o the_o life_n of_o lewell_fw-mi perceive_v that_o lewell_fw-mi have_v offer_v to_o much_o when_o in_o the_o heat_n of_o his_o sermon_n he_o be_v content_a to_o be_v try_v by_o father_n say_v that_o he_o may_v have_v use_v a_o better_a defence_n for_o he_o sel●e_v than_o the_o authority_n of_o father_n whoe_n say_v he_o if_o they_o teach_v contrary_a it_o little_o skill_v for_o what_o have_v we_o to_o do_v with_o father_n with_o flesh_n &_o blood_n or_o what_o pertain_v it_o to_o we_o what_o the_o false_a synod_n of_o bishop_n do_v decree_n orig._n vide_fw-la ●undem_fw-la in_o praefat_fw-la in_o orig._n beza_n call_v athanasius_n satanasius_fw-la and_o the_o father_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n blind_a sophiste_n minister_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o staff_n of_o antichrist_n papatum_fw-la ●●ont_fw-fr papatum_fw-la and_o although_o luther_n affirm_v that_o saint_n gregory_n the_o great_a be_v the_o last_o good_a pope_n yet_o bibliander_n call_v he_o in_o derision_n the_o patriarch_n of_o ceremony_n melancthon_n condemn_v he_o for_o allow_a of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a mel._n praef_n ep_v zui●●_n gl_o &_o mel._n paulus_n vergerius_n write_v a_o book_n of_o the_o toy_n and_o fable_n of_o gregory_n horn_n in_o his_o book_n against_o abbot_n fecnam_n call_v this_o saint_n to_o who_o we_o english_a man_n owe_v no_o less_o than_o our_o conversion_n from_o paganism_n to_o christiantie_n a_o blind_a buzzard_n 678._o cent_z 1._o pag._n 66_o 72_o cent._n ●_o par_fw-fr 678._o bile_n the_o chronicler_n say_v that_o this_o saint_n send_v austin_n the_o monk_n to_o plant_v in_o england_n his_o romish_a religion_n but_o yet_o say_v he_o lat●mer_n be_v much_o more_o worthy_a to_o be_v count_v england_n apostle_n because_o austin_n bring_v nothing_o but_o man_n tradition_n mass_n cross_n litany_n whereas_o latimer_n with_o the_o hook_n of_o truth_n cut_v of_o these_o superstition_n whitaker_n in_o his_o book_n call_v reprehension_n 8●_n pag._n 8●_n say_v that_o the_o father_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o antichrist_n be_v but_o one_o particular_a man_n but_o in_o that_o as_o in_o many_o other_o thing_n the●_n err_v the_o like_a respect_n they_o bear_v to_o general_a counsel_n in_o which_o the_o wise_a and_o grave_a father_n of_o the_o church_n be_v alway_v assemble_v luther_n in_o his_o book_n of_o counsel_n call_v they_o sycophant_n and_o flatterer_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o say_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a which_o constantine_n reverence_v and_o honour_v with_o his_o presence_n be_v hay_n straw_n stick_n and_o stubble_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la yea_o in_o this_o council_n he_o find_v a_o plain_n contradiction_n because_o the_o council_n forbid_v all_o eunuch_n to_o be_v promote_v to_o preesthood_n and_o yet_o command_v preeste_n to_o live_v chaste_o as_o though_o only_o they_o who_o be_v geld_v can_v live_v chaste_a and_o as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o mean_a betwixt_o wive_v and_o gelding_n yea_o say_v luther_n angliae_fw-la l._n ●●nt_n regem_fw-la angliae_fw-la if_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o counsel_n be_v pour_v into_o there_o with_o a_o pipe_n yet_o will_v they_o not_o make_v thou_o a_o christian_n 8._o l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 9_o sect_n 8._o caluin_n will_v examine_v all_o counsel_n by_o the_o word_n before_o he_o will_v give_v any_o credit_n unto_o they_o and_o see_v that_o the_o father_n in_o counsel_n examine_v their_o decree_n by_o scripture_n also_o caluin_n will_v make_v a_o examination_n upon_o their_o examination_n and_o so_o will_v be_v judge_n of_o they_o all_o but_o lest_o i_o weary_a the_o reader_n with_o to_o long_o a_o catalogue_n of_o revile_v speech_n of_o these_o contumelious_a chamme_n and_o parricide_n i_o report_v i_o unto_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n whether_o they_o deserve_v not_o the_o punishment_n of_o parricide_n who_o so_o scoff_n taunt_n contemn_v and_o revile_v their_o forefather_n but_o my_o meaning_n be_v not_o to_o condemn_v they_o upon_o who_o god_n his_o sentence_n must_v pass_v my_o drift_n be_v hereby_o to_o show_v how_o much_o in_o revile_v father_n they_o crack_v the_o credit_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o how_o withal_o in_o reject_v this_o authority_n they_o open_v the_o gap_n to_o all_o heretic_n and_o heresy_n and_o as_o concern_v the_o first_o point_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o antiquity_n be_v alway_n reverence_v old_a age_n be_v ever_o respect_v old_a coin_n price_v ancient_a statue_n admire_v old_a write_n esteem_v and_o in_o all_o art_n the_o most_o ancient_a professor_n of_o the_o same_o bear_v the_o bell_n a_o way_n in_o paint_v appelles_n have_v the_o credit_n above_o all_o painter_n in_o statuary_n work_v lycippꝰ_n in_o comedy_n plautus_n and_o terence_n in_o tragedy_n seneca_n in_o history_n livy_n sallust_n justine_n in_o poetry_n homer_n virgil_n ovid_n in_o rhetoric_n demosthenes_n and_o cicero_n in_o philosophy_n plato_n and_o aristotle_n in_o divinity_n peter_n lombard_n saint_n thomas_n of_o aquin_n scotus_n and_o such_o other_o subtle_a schoolman_n and_o shall_v not_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o by_o their_o art_n profess_a exposition_n of_o scripture_n be_v reverence_v and_o credit_v in_o their_o art_n before_o our_o unlearned_a and_o upstart_n minister_n shall_v antiquity_n give_v credit_n to_o poet_n and_o painter_n and_o not_o to_o doctor_n &_o interpreter_n of_o scripture_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o prefer_v ꝓphane_a literature_n before_o religion_n philosophy_n before_o faith_n &_o divinity_n paganism_n before_o christianity_n yea_o poete_n &_o painter_n before_o doctor_n &_o father_n of_o the_o church_n if_o any_o one_o now_o shall_v say_v that_o plato_n and_o aristotle_n be_v but_o
the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o the_o first_o of_o they_o in_o our_o country_n and_o in_o every_o country_n prove_v their_o authority_n by_o miracle_n 31._o ●_o 31._o and_o their_o successor_n prove_v the_o same_o by_o succession_n but_o as_o yet_o the_o new_a preacher_n can_v never_o prove_v their_o authority_n and_o mission_n to_o be_v either_o extraordinary_a by_o miracle_n or_o ordinary_a by_o succession_n as_o be_v already_o demonstrate_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n so_o that_o for_o learning_n virtue_n antiquity_n number_n dignity_n by_o w_z ch_o authority_n be_v get_v we_o and_o our_o religion_n do_v carry_v the_o bell_n away_v what_o reason_n then_o have_v man_n to_o forsake_v catholic_n and_o their_o pastor_n and_o preacher_n to_o harken_v unto_o these_o new_a prophet_n who_o nether_a in_o learning_n nor_o virtue_n nor_o antiquity_n not_o number_n nor_o dignity_n can_v make_v any_o just_a comparison_n with_o they_o suppose_v some_o one_o shall_v be_v waver_v and_o doubtful_a 〈◊〉_d religion_n and_o deliberate_v with_o he_o ●olfe_n whether_o to_o follow_v the_o old_a father_n 〈◊〉_d new_a preacher_n shall_v make_v this_o discourse_n with_o himself_o i_o have_v be_v baptiae_v and_o bring_v up_o in_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o so_o be_v my_o fore_a father_n thy_fw-mi i_o out_o of_o mind_n but_o of_o late_a year_n some_o have_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o avouch_v that_o they_o be_v all_o deceive_v and_o damn_v also_o unless_o igno●unce_n excuse_v they_o wherefore_o see_v that_o without_o true_a faith_n no_o man_n can_v be_v sa●●ed_v it_o be_v good_a that_o i_o look_v into_o both_o the_o old_a and_o new_a religion_n to_o see_v which_o by_o all_o reason_n i_o ought_v to_o embrace_v but_o before_o i_o give_v ear_n unto_o these_o reformer_n which_o say_v that_o they_o come_v to_o correct_v old_a error_n let_v i_o see_v what_o probability_n they_o bring_v for_o their_o pure_a and_o reform_a religion_n first_o i_o see_v they_o aggree_v not_o and_o yet_o every_o one_o say_v that_o he_o teachethe_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o reform_a religion_n and_o see_v that_o one_o bring_v no_o more_o authority_n than_o another_o that_o be_v scripture_n interpret_v by_o his_o own_o spirit_n i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o i_o shall_v give_v credit_n more_o to_o one_o then_o to_o another_o and_o therefore_o because_o i_o can_v not_o give_v credit_n to_o all_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o i_o shall_v credit_v any_o of_o they_o all_o ●●_o hier._n ●●_o second_o i_o be_o forwarn_v that_o false_a prophere_n shall_v come_v unsent_a and_o yet_o avouche_v also_o that_o they_o be_v send_v from_o god_n and_o therefore_o unless_o these_o man_n can_v say_v more_o for_o themselves_o then_o they_o can_v i_o see_v no_o reason_n which_o can_v bind_v i_o to_o give_v ear_n unto_o they_o they_o say_v they_o be_v send_v from_o god_n so_o will_v false_a prophet_n say_v and_o i_o examine_v what_o be_v their_o mission_n find_v therein_o a_o great_a defect_n for_o either_o it_o be_v a_o ordinary_a mission_n and_o then_o they_o must_v show_v a_o succession_n of_o pastor_n who_o room_n they_o supply_v which_o i_o see_v they_o can_v not_o do_v because_o no_o history_n make_v mention_v either_o of_o their_o pastor_n or_o their_o service_n or_o practice_v of_o their_o religion_n or_o it_o be_v a_o extraordinary_a by_o which_o they_o be_v send_v immediate_o from_o christ_n and_o then_o they_o must_v prove_v it_o by_o miracle_n else_o i_o must_v by_o the_o same_o reason_n harken_v unto_o every_o false_a prophet_n nether_a do_v it_o suffice_v to_o say_v that_o they_o preach_v no_o other_o doctrine_n than_o the_o apostle_n do_v and_o therefore_o need_v no_o other_o miracle_n than_o those_o which_o be_v wrought_v by_o they_o for_o so_o every_o archeretique_n may_v say_v and_o you_o can_v not_o control_v he_o unless_o you_o put_v he_o to_o his_o miracle_n but_o they_o allege_v scripture_n for_o their_o doctrine_n so_o have_v all_o heretic_n do_v as_o be_v show_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n but_o heretic_n expound_v scripture_n amiss_o these_o man_n have_v hitten_v upon_o the_o right_a meaning_n how_o shall_v i_o know_v that_o they_o say_v they_o have_v the_o true_a spirit_n in_o interpret_n of_o scripture_n and_o how_o shall_v i_o or_o how_o can_v they_o ●ell_v that_o see_v that_o nothing_o be_v so_o secret_a as_o be_v this_o spirit_n as_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o three_o chapter_n and_o do_v not_o arius_n say_v that_o he_o interpret_v scripture_n by_o the_o true_a spirit_n when_o he_o allege_v they_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o son_n be_v a_o creature_n &_o netherequall_a nor_o coequal_a nor_o consubstantial_a to_o his_o father_n yea_o do_v not_o all_o heretic_n say_v so_o do_v not_o all_o the_o reformer_n say_v so_o even_o when_o they_o hold_v contrary_a opinion_n i_o see_v no_o reason_n therefore_o not_o so_o much_o as_o probable_a why_o i_o shall_v harken_v unto_o these_o reformer_n unless_o i_o will_v harken_v also_o unto_o all_o the_o heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v much_o less_o can_v i_o see_v any_o reason_n why_o to_o forsake_v my_o ancient_a pastor_n who_o make_v i_o and_o my_o for_o father_n christian_n and_o to_o prefer_v these_o pretend_a reformer_n before_o they_o for_o as_o for_o learning_n they_o surpass_v these_o reformer_n and_o for_o virtue_n they_o excel_v and_o so_o be_v more_o likely_a man_n to_o see_v into_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o verity_n of_o religion_n and_o be_v fit_a instrument_n for_o god_n to_o use_v and_o vessel_n more_o capable_a of_o god_n his_o spirit_n and_o revelation_n in_o antiquity_n they_o be_v before_o they_o by_o many_o hundred_o year_n in_o number_n they_o be_v a_o hundred_o at_o least_o for_o one_o for_o authority_n they_o be_v honourable_a prelate_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n who_o prove_v their_o mission_n commission_n and_o authority_n by_o succession_n yea_o and_o by_o miracle_n also_o nether_a of_o which_o proof_n the_o reformer_n can_v alleag_v for_o their_o mission_n and_o authority_n shall_v i_o then_o leave_v such_o learned_a man_n for_o such_o young_a clat_a ke_n so_o virtuous_a man_n for_o so_o vicious_a so_o ancient_a pastor_n for_o so_o new_a &_o so_o late_a upstarte_n so_o many_o for_o so_o few_o and_o man_n of_o such_o pastoral_a dignity_n for_o they_o that_o can_v not_o prove_v their_o commission_n no_o more_o than_o a_o false_a prophet_n can_v do_v sure_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o i_o shall_v and_o see_v that_o god_n will_v not_o bind_v i_o to_o give_v credit_n to_o they_o that_o can_v bring_v no_o probability_n for_o their_o own_o or_o their_o doctor_n authority_n i_o see_v not_o how_o with_o any_o show_v of_o justice_n god_n can_v at_o the_o latter_a day_n condemn_v i_o for_o not_o harken_v unto_o they_o for_o i_o may_v answer_n with_o reason_n that_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o i_o shall_v harken_v to_o they_o rather_o they_o to_o every_o false_a prophet_n much_o less_o why_o i_o shall_v forsake_v my_o ancient_a religion_n for_o a_o new_a and_o my_o old_a &_o grave_a father_n for_o a_o few_o young_a minister_n who_o be_v bear_v but_o yesterday_o by_o this_o gentle_a reader_n thou_o may_v see_v how_o little_a reason_n man_n of_o understanding_n have_v to_o give_v credit_n unto_o the_o new_a religion_n but_o lest_o i_o may_v seem_v to_o partial_a or_o thou_o gentle_a reader_n may_v be_v to_o timorous_a in_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n let_v the_o matter_n be_v bring_v before_o a_o indifferent_a judge_n who_o be_v net_n she_o of_o the_o old_a nor_o the_o new_a religion_n a●●_n l._n 1●_n a●●_n in_o jose_z phus_fw-la his_o history_n i_o find_v a_o example_n in_o the_o like_a case_n of_o controversy_n the_o jew_n say_v he_o and_o the_o samaritan_n contend_v once_o about_o the_o place_n where_o god_n shall_v be_v worship_v the_o jew_v say_v jerusalem_n be_v the_o place_n 17.10.4_o deus_fw-la 19.4_o reg._n 17.10.4_o the_o samaritan_n will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v the_o mount_v garizim_n the_o matter_n be_v bring_v before_o a_o pagan_a king_n yet_o a_o discreet_a and_o indifferent_a judge_n prolocutour_n be_v appoint_v on_o bother_n side_n to_o plead_v the_o cause_n sabeus_fw-la and_o theodosius_n for_o the_o samaritan_n andronicus_n for_o the_o jew_n andronicus_n have_v leave_v grant_v to_o speak_v first_o who_o recount_v a_o succession_n of_o the_o high_a precste_n from_o aaron_n unto_o his_o time_n all_o which_o time_n the_o jew_n be_v count_v the_o true_a worshipper_n of_o god_n he_o declare_v the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n there_o offer_v he_o tell_v how_o that_o place_n be_v ever_o take_v for_o the_o true_a place_n of_o worship_n and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v adorn_v and_o enrich_v not_o only_o by_o the_o gift_n
yet_o i_o be_o sure_a they_o will_v not_o intermeddle_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n to_o give_v sentence_n what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o scripture_n which_o book_n be_v canonical_a and_o what_o opinion_n be_v heretical_a and_o contrary_a unto_o god_n his_o word_n no_o more_o than_o they_o will_v entermedle_v in_o minister_a of_o sacrament_n or_o preach_v of_o god_n word_n for_o they_o know_v full_a well_o what_o josaphat_n that_o good_a king_n say_v 19_o ●_o par_fw-fr 19_o to_o wit_n that_o amarias_n the_o high_a priest_n be_v to_o rule_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o captain_n zabadias_n to_o menage_n matter_n belong_v to_o the_o king_n office_n and_o ozias_o may_v be_v a_o sufficient_a example_n unto_o all_o prince_n 26._o ●_o par_fw-fr 26._o who_o be_v strike_v with_o a_o leprie_n for_o usurp_a the_o priests_n office_n in_o incense_a we_o read_v in_o deed_n that_o christ_n command_v saint_n peter_n to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n and_o to_o govern_v his_o church_n 4._o io._n 21._o act._n 2d_o ephes_n 4._o priest_n also_o and_o pastor_n have_v the_o same_o charge_n commit_v unto_o they_o yea_o the_o prophet_n isaie_n say_v that_o prince_n be_v nurse_n furtherer_n and_o favourer_n and_o defender_n of_o the_o church_n 49.38.60_o be_v 49.38.60_o but_o he_o never_o call_v they_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o judge_n in_o religion_n wherefore_o saint_n ambrose_n bishop_n of_o milan_n writing_n to_o his_o sister_n say_v that_o he_o tell_v valentinian_n the_o emperor_n what_o belong_v to_o his_o office_n in_o these_o wordless_a 13._o ep._n 13._o trouble_v not_o they_o self_n o_o emperor_n as_o to_o think_v that_o thou_o have_v any_o imperial_a right_n to_o meddle_v in_o divine_a matter_n extol_v not_o they_o self_n but_o if_o thou_o will_v reign_v long_o be_v thou_o subject_a to_o god_n it_o be_v write_v give_v to_o god_n which_o be_v belong_v to_o god_n and_o to_o caesar_n which_o belong_v to_o caesar_n unto_o the_o emperor_n palace_n appertain_v unto_o the_o priest_n church_n the_o charge_n of_o the_o public_a wall_n be_v commit_v to_o thou_o but_o not_o of_o sacred_a and_o holy_a thing_n a_o sentence_n worthy_a to_o be_v set_v in_o a_o tablet_n of_o gold_n and_o to_o hang_v about_o a_o prince_n neck_n and_o true_o if_o prince_n be_v judge_n of_o religion_n we_o must_v change_v religion_n at_o their_o pleasure_n and_o so_o we_o shall_v have_v almost_o as_o many_o religion_n as_o prince_n much_o less_o can_v the_o parliament_n be_v judge_n in_o religion_n for_o that_o consist_v of_o temporal_a man_n and_o although_o in_o england_n the_o lord_n spiritual_a be_v join_v with_o the_o temporal_a yet_o be_v they_o all_o rule_v by_o the_o prince_n and_o where_o i_o pray_v you_o do_v scripture_n warrant_v we_o that_o the_o parliament_n be_v our_o judge_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n yea_o we_o see_v that_o parlamente_n varye_a in_o religion_n and_o so_o they_o can_v give_v no_o certain_a sentence_n for_o religion_n in_o france_n the_o parliament_n be_v catholic_a and_z be_v content_a to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o no_o wise_a will_v meddle_v with_o matter_n of_o religion_n in_o king_n henry_n time_n the_o eight_o of_o that_o name_n the_o parliament_n enact_v six_o catholic_a article_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n the_o parliament_n allow_v of_o another_o religion_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n of_o another_o and_o in_o queen_n elizabethes_n time_n of_o another_o if_o then_o the_o same_o man_n have_v live_v in_o all_o these_o princess_n time_n as_o many_o have_v do_v then_o if_o the_o parliament_n be_v judge_n he_o must_v in_o conscience_n though_o religion_n be_v but_o one_o have_v change_v fowre_a time_n his_o religion_n else_o have_v he_o be_v fowre_a time_n a_o heretic_n and_o as_o often_o traitor_n yea_o i_o think_v if_o the_o parliament_n be_v demand_v to_o define_v which_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v canonical_a and_o which_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n they_o will_v answer_v that_o such_o matter_n belong_v not_o unto_o they_o but_o they_o will_v answer_n that_o the_o parliament_n be_v judge_n when_o it_o be_v conformable_a to_o scripture_n as_o it_o be_v at_o this_o present_a but_o be_v not_o in_o queen_n maries_n tyme._n thus_o they_o may_v answer_n but_o with_o how_o little_a reason_n it_o will_v easy_o appear_v for_o either_o the_o parliament_n precise_o or_o the_o parliament_n aggree_v with_o scripture_n be_v this_o judge_n if_o they_o grant_v i_o the_o first_o then_o must_v we_o in_o conscience_n change_v religion_n as_o often_o as_o the_o parliament_n change_v decree_n if_o they_o grant_v only_o the_o second_o then_o be_v the_o parliament_n no_o infallible_a judge_n yea_o no_o judge_n at_o all_o for_o yet_o we_o must_v have_v a_o judge_n to_o judge_v the_o parliament_n and_o to_o determine_v when_o the_o parliament_n follow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n else_o shall_v we_o never_o be_v satisfy_v and_o who_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v this_o judge_n now_o i_o see_v not_o who_o they_o can_v name_v unless_o it_o be_v my_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n or_o the_o ministry_n of_o england_n or_o of_o all_o country_n where_o their_o religion_n flourish_v but_o then_o i_o demand_v of_o they_o first_o where_o they_o read_v in_o scripture_n that_o their_o clergy_n be_v a_o infallible_a judge_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n they_o will_v say_v that_o the_o scripture_n command_v we_o to_o give_v credit_n to_o our_o pastor_n true_a but_o if_o i_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v true_a pastor_n they_o can_v not_o prove_v themselves_o to_o be_v so_o because_o they_o can_v not_o prove_v their_o mission_n as_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n be_v prove_v most_o evident_o second_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n since_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o have_v change_v religion_n diverse_a time_n and_o this_o new_a clergy_n be_v never_o yet_o constant_a in_o faith_n for_o one_o whole_a year_n together_o yea_o they_o aggree_v not_o amongst_o themselves_o and_o so_o can_v be_v no_o assure_a and_o infallible_a judge_n three_o either_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n be_v judge_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n because_o it_o be_v the_o clergy_n of_o england_n or_o because_o it_o be_v the_o clergy_n of_o a_o whole_a country_n or_o because_o it_o conspire_v with_o the_o universal_a clergy_n of_o their_o religion_n if_o they_o grant_v i_o the_o first_o then_o do_v it_o folwith_n we_o must_v have_v a_o judge_n to_o judge_v the_o parliament_n and_o to_o determine_v when_o the_o parliament_n follow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n else_o shall_v we_o never_o be_v satisfy_v and_o who_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v this_o judge_n now_o i_o see_v not_o who_o they_o can_v name_v unless_o it_o be_v my_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n or_o the_o ministry_n of_o england_n or_o of_o all_o country_n where_o their_o religion_n flourish_v but_o then_o i_o demand_v of_o they_o first_o where_o they_o read_v in_o scripture_n that_o their_o clergy_n be_v a_o infallible_a judge_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n they_o will_v say_v that_o the_o scripture_n command_v we_o to_o give_v credit_n to_o our_o pastor_n true_a but_o if_o i_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v true_a pastor_n they_o can_v not_o prove_v themselves_o to_o be_v so_o because_o they_o can_v not_o prove_v their_o mission_n as_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n be_v prove_v most_o evident_o second_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n since_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o have_v change_v religion_n diverse_a time_n and_o this_o new_a clergy_n be_v never_o yet_o constant_a in_o faith_n for_o one_o whole_a year_n together_o yea_o they_o aggree_v not_o amongst_o themselves_o and_o so_o can_v be_v no_o assure_a and_o infallible_a judge_n three_o either_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n be_v judge_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n because_o it_o be_v the_o clergy_n of_o england_n or_o because_o it_o be_v the_o clergy_n of_o a_o whole_a country_n or_o because_o it_o conspire_v with_o the_o universal_a clergy_n of_o their_o religion_n if_o they_o grant_v i_o the_o first_o then_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o only_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n be_v this_o judge_n and_o so_o all_o other_o country_n must_v be_v subject_n to_o the_o inglish_n clergy_n to_o w_z ch_o they_o will_v never_o aggree_v if_o they_o grant_v the_o second_o than_o every_o clergy_n of_o a_o whole_a country_n be_v judge_v and_o so_o we_o shall_v have_v as_o many_o religion_n all_o most_o as_o country_n and_o although_o the_o new_a clergy_n of_o ingland_n germany_n scotland_n holland_n geneve_v be_v contrary_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o yet_o the_o people_n of_o every_o country_n must_v acknowledge_v they_o as_o judge_n in_o religion_n and_o so_o must_v embrace_v contrary_a opinion_n if_o they_o grant_v the_o three_o i_o must_v desire_v they_o to_o aggree_v all_o amongst_o themselves_o before_o we_o stand_v to_o their_o judgement_n
be_v sow_v root_v &_o come_v to_o some_o height_n and_o ripeness_n before_o ever_o the_o false_a apostle_n scatter_v the_o nettleseed_n and_o hempseed_n of_o their_o heresy_n yea_o not_o only_o by_o the_o apostle_n general_o in_o the_o world_n but_o also_o by_o their_o successor_n particular_o in_o every_o particular_a country_n faith_o the_o grow_v and_o flourish_v before_o heresy_n be_v sow_v ●_o ●i_fw-la ●_o for_o as_o bozius_n in_o his_o four_o book_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n learned_o prove_v the_o first_o conversion_n of_o every_o country_n from_o paganism_n unto_o christianity_n be_v not_o to_o heresy_n but_o to_o the_o true_a faith_n &_o roman_a religion_n and_o when_o that_o be_v receive_v then_o heresy_n be_v but_o a_o corruption_n of_o true_a faith_n as_o vinegar_n be_v of_o wine_n begin_v to_o take_v place_n then_o the_o cockle_n spring_v up_o after_o the_o good_a corn_n and_o therefore_o saint_n paul_n give_v we_o this_o mark_n to_o know_v a_o heretic_n and_o for_o heresy_n that_o they_o arise_v after_o the_o true_a religion_n 80_o act._n 80_o i_o know_v say_v he_o that_o raven_a wolf_n that_o be_v heretic_n after_o my_o departure_n shall_v enter_v amongst_o you_o not_o sparinge_v the_o flock_n so_o that_o after_o saint_n paul_n have_v preach_v and_o persuade_v true_a faith_n the_o false_a prophet_n enter_v to_o ruin_v the_o spiritual_a building_n w_o ch_o he_o have_v frame_v in_o like_a manner_n the_o ancient_a father_n have_v ever_o note_v heretic_n &_o their_o heresy_n of_o late_a stand_n and_o novelty_n 2d_o l._n praesc_fw-la c_o 2d_o in_o all_o thing_n say_v tertulian_n the_o verity_n go_v before_o the_o image_n and_o last_o of_o all_o come_v the_o similitude_n yea_o say_v he_o it_o be_v a_o folly_n to_o think_v that_o heresy_n in_o doctrine_n be_v the_o first_o especial_o see_v that_o the_o true_a religion_n fortel_v heresy_n and_o in_o another_o place_n marcionens_fw-la will_v 4._o adversus_fw-la marcionens_fw-la thus_o he_o conclude_v insumma_fw-la si_fw-la constatid_v verius_fw-la quod_fw-la prius_fw-la id_fw-la prius_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n pariter_fw-la utique_fw-la constabit_fw-la idesse_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n traditum_fw-la quod_fw-la apud_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la apostolicas_fw-la fuerit_fw-la sacrosanctum_a in_o brief_a if_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o that_o be_v true_a which_o be_v first_o that_o first_o which_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n that_o from_o ye._n begin_n w_o ch_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n it_o shall_v likewise_o be_v manifest_a that_o that_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostles_n w_o ch_o have_v be_v inviolable_o hold_v in_o the_o apostolical_a church_n and_o in_o his_o book_n against_o praxeas_n he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v adjudge_v against_o all_o heresy_n that_o that_o be_v true_a w_z ch_o be_v first_o that_o be_v counterfeit_v w_z ch_o be_v late_a and_o this_o he_o show_v by_o a_o similitude_n for_o say_v he_o as_o the_o wild_a olive_n spring_v out_o often_o time_n out_o of_o the_o sweet_a olive_n nut_n 36._o l._n praesc_fw-la c_o 36._o and_o the_o wild_a figtree_n out_o of_o the_o good_a fig_n so_o heresy_n have_v grow_v out_o of_o our_o ground_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o we_o degenerate_v from_o the_o true_a grain_n of_o faith_n ireneus_fw-la also_o subscribe_v to_o tertulians_n opinion_n in_o these_o word_n medium_n l_o 5._o circa_fw-la medium_n omnes_fw-la illi_fw-la valde_fw-la posteriores_fw-la sunt_fw-la quam_fw-la episcopi_fw-la quibus_fw-la apostoli_fw-la tradiderunt_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la all_o they_o he_o mean_v heretic_n be_v of_o much_o late_a stand_n than_o the_o bishop_n to_o who_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v and_o comit_v the_o church_n and_o as_o heretic_n be_v note_v of_o late_a stand_n so_o be_v their_o doctrine_n count_v to_o savour_n of_o novelty_n wherefore_o zozomenus_n say_v 1●_n l._n 1._o c._n 1●_n that_o arrius_n be_v not_o a_o fray_v to_o affirm_v that_o which_o never_o any_o dare_v avouch_v to_o wit_n that_o god_n the_o son_n be_v create_v of_o nothing_o and_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n writing_n a_o book_n against_o heresy_n intitle_v it_o against_o profane_a novelty_n and_o wise_o observe_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n keep_v the_o old_a and_o devise_v no_o new_a doctrine_n to_o which_o sense_n he_o explicate_v those_o word_n of_o saint_n paul_n o_o timothee_n depositum_fw-la custodi_fw-la 2._o c._n 2._o o_o timothee_n keep_v that_o which_o be_v depose_v with_o thou_o and_o commit_v to_o thy_o custody_n depositum_fw-la custodi_fw-la say_v he_o non_fw-la quod_fw-la à_fw-la te_fw-la inventum_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la tibi_fw-la creditum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la accepisti_fw-la non_fw-la quod_fw-la excogitasti_fw-la rem_fw-la non_fw-la ingenij_fw-la sed_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la non_fw-la usurpationis_fw-la privatae_fw-la sed_fw-la pi●blicae_fw-la traditionis_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la non_fw-la author_n esse_fw-la debes_fw-la sed_fw-la custos_fw-la non_fw-la institutor_fw-la sed_fw-la sectator_n aurum_fw-la accepisti_fw-la aurum_fw-la red_a nolo_fw-la mihi_fw-la pro_fw-la alijs_fw-la alia_fw-la subijcias_fw-la keep_v that_o which_o be_v depose_v not_o which_o be_v invent_v by_o thou_o but_o which_o be_v commit_v to_o thou_o which_o thou_o have_v receive_v not_o which_o tho_o have_v devise_v a_o thing_n not_o of_o wit_n but_o of_o doctrine_n not_o of_o private_a usurpation_n but_o of_o public_a tradition_n in_o which_o thou_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v a_o autour_fw-fr but_o a_o keeper_n not_o a_o institut_fw-la our_o but_o a_o follower_n thou_o receive_v gold_n restore_v gold_n i_o will_v not_o have_v thou_o put_v in_o one_o thing_n for_o another_o wherein_o he_o put_v a_o plain_n difference_n bettwixt_v catholic_n and_o heretic_n that_o they_o stick_v to_o the_o old_a these_o be_v ever_o devise_v new_a doctrine_n for_o although_o the_o church_n by_o new_a counsel_n and_o definition_n add_v great_a explication_n of_o her_o religion_n and_o although_o by_o the_o labour_n and_o endeavour_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n which_o in_o no_o age_n be_v want_v many_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v more_o illustrate_v and_o dilate_v yet_o in_o substance_n our_o faith_n be_v still_o one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o therefore_o divine_v say_v that_o faith_n never_o from_o the_o beginning_n have_v increase_v in_o substance_n but_o only_o in_o explication_n and_o that_o the_o church_n since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n never_o have_v new_a revelation_n in_o the_o article_n of_o belief_n and_o that_o in_o general_a counsel_n she_o define_v no_o new_a thing_n but_o rather_o those_o thing_n which_o before_o be_v extaunte_n in_o scripture_n father_n or_o tradition_n she_o by_o her_o definition_n declare_v more_o certain_o and_o propose_v more_o plain_o to_o the_o view_n of_o the_o world_n so_o that_o as_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n say_v 29.30_o 〈◊〉_d 29.30_o even_o as_o man_n body_n increase_v by_o nutrition_n and_o augmentation_n yet_o gayn_v no_o new_a limb_n and_o member_n but_o only_o get_v more_o quantity_n and_o strength_n in_o the_o former_a so_o christian_n faith_n by_o no_o increase_n do_v ever_o yet_o gain_v new_a article_n but_o only_o have_v get_v great_a and_o clear_a explication_n of_o the_o former_a wherefore_o the_o same_o doctor_n counsele_v every_o preacher_n and_o teacher_n so_o to_o explicate_v thing_n after_o a_o new_a manner_n that_o he_o preach_v not_o new_a doctrine_n eadem_fw-la quae_fw-la accepisti_fw-la say_v eth_z he_o ita_fw-la doce_fw-la 〈◊〉_d c._n 〈◊〉_d ut_fw-la cùm_fw-la dicas_fw-la nouè_fw-fr non_fw-la dicas_fw-la nova_fw-la the_o same_o thing_n which_o thou_o have_v receive_v so_o do_v thou_o teach_v that_o when_o thou_o speak_v after_o a_o new_a manner_n thou_o speak_v no_o new_a thing_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o faith_n admit_v no_o novelty_n be_v this_o because_o god_n speak_v once_o and_o never_o recall_v or_o amend_v his_o word_n 6●_n job_n 33._o psal_n 6●_n and_o in_o he_o that_o proverb_n take_v no_o place_n secunda_fw-la consilia_fw-la meliora_fw-la second_v counsayl_n be_v the_o best_a for_o god_n be_v as_o wise_a and_o circumspect_a at_o the_o first_o as_o at_o the_o last_o &_o therefore_o he_o have_v once_o reveal_v and_o plant_v faith_n that_o must_v stand_v for_o good_a and_o he_o that_o seek_v to_o change_v declare_v himself_o a_o corrupter_n not_o a_o corrector_n and_o in_o that_o he_o come_v after_o with_o his_o divise_a wit_n to_o add_v ordetract_v from_o the_o old_a receive_a faith_n he_o betray_v himself_o to_o be_v of_o late_a stand_n &_o so_o a_o heretic_n and_o his_o doctrine_n to_o savour_n of_o novelty_n &_o so_o a_o heresy_n wherefore_o to_o conclude_v sith_o that_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o catholic_n who_o they_o call_v papist_n be_v of_o noelate_n stand_v nor_o no_o upstart_n for_o i_o demand_v when_o they_o begin_v and_o after_o who_o they_o arise_v they_o can_v be_v no_o heretic_n &_o see_v that_o it_o be_v no_o less_o certain_a that_o the_o reformer_n of_o this_o
infant_n from_o his_o mother_n pap_n shall_v delight_v &_o disport_v himself_o over_o the_o asp_n hole_n without_o receive_v harm_n that_o be_v such_o peace_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n that_o the_o child_n of_o christ_n church_n shall_v live_v quiet_o with_o those_o who_o before_o they_o receive_v christian_n fay_v by_o heresy_n infidelity_n or_o poison_v manner_n 2._o ●_o 2._o like_o serpent_n infect_v other_o for_o as_o in_o the_o ark_n of_o no_o those_o beast_n which_o be_v by_o nature_n savage_a so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o ark_n forget_v all_o cruelty_n and_o live_v with_o the_o rest_n most_o quiet_o so_o how_o soever_o man_n before_o their_o incorporation_n and_o admission_n into_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v barbarouse_n in_o manner_n and_o mutinouse_a in_o opinion_n yet_o when_o they_o be_v once_o make_v member_n of_o the_o peaceble_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n church_n they_o lay_v a_o side_n all_o sect_n and_o faction_n and_o live_v quiet_o together_o at_o least_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n whereby_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v peace_n and_o unity_n in_o religion_n which_o the_o apostle_n also_o insinuate_v in_o those_o word_n 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o be_v carrefall_n to_o keep_v unity_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o band_n of_o peace_n as_o you_o be_v call_v in_o one_o hope_n of_o your_o vocation_n one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n &_o father_n of_o all_o by_o which_o word_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o as_o there_o be_v one_o god_n one_o heaven_n one_o baptism_n so_o be_v there_o but_o one_o faith_n &_o that_o they_o be_v the_o true_a chri_fw-la stianes_fw-la w_o ch_n conspire_v in_o the_o same_o and_o the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v because_o the_o truth_n be_v one_o never_o disagree_v from_o itself_o lie_n be_v many_o mutable_a and_o contrary_a and_o therefore_o see_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n 3._o 1._o tim._n 3._o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o where_o the_o church_n be_v there_o be_v unity_n because_o the_o truth_n in_o which_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n aggree_n be_v but_o one_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o diverse_a nation_n but_o yet_o they_o be_v so_o link_v in_o one_o faith_n that_o in_o christ_n jesu_n there_o be_v no_o distinction_n betwixt_v the_o barbarous_a and_o grecian_a 10._o rom_n 10._o nor_o between_o jew_n and_o gentile_n and_o although_o these_o diverse_a nation_n speak_v diverse_a language_n yet_o as_o ireneus_fw-la note_v these_o diverse_a tongue_n profess_v one_o faith_n 3._o l._n 1._o c●nt_fw-la she_o c._n 3._o i_o grant_v also_o that_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v diverse_a function_n and_o dignity_n for_o there_o be_v pope_n patriarch_n primate_fw-la archbishop_n bishop_n 4._o eph._n 4._o and_o so_o forth_o and_o from_o they_o the_o state_n of_o the_o laity_n be_v distincte_n and_o subject_a to_o they_o but_o these_o diverse_a order_n make_v one_o hierarchy_n i_o confess_v like_o wise_a that_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v diverse_a state_n and_o order_n of_o religiouse_a as_o of_o benedictin_o dominicane_n augustine_n bernardin_n franciscanes_n jesuit_n yet_o these_o diverse_a member_n make_v one_o body_n all_o link_v under_o one_o head_n christ_n jesus_n by_o one_o faith_n and_o religion_n this_o unity_n peace_n and_o aggreement_n in_o one_o faith_n and_o religion_n which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o church_n militaunt_a in_o earth_n seem_v to_o i_o more_o admirable_a than_o that_o of_o the_o church_n triumphaunt_v in_o heaven_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o that_o happy_a kingdom_n behold_v god_n face_n to_o face_n and_o see_v most_o evident_o that_o which_o we_o believe_v only_o and_o see_v not_o at_o all_o and_o so_o their_o aggreement_n in_o understanding_n be_v not_o so_o strange_a because_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o verity_n which_o they_o see_v incline_v they_o to_o one_o assent_n for_o as_o the_o philosopher_n say_v the_o understanding_n of_o itself_o be_v prone_a to_o give_v assent_n unto_o verity_n and_o truth_n when_o it_o be_v evident_o propose_v which_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o in_o thing_n which_o be_v evident_a all_o man_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n and_o therefore_o to_o this_o proposition_n the_o whole_a be_v great_a than_o the_o half_a all_o man_n aggree_v but_o about_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o felicity_n of_o man_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n which_o be_v not_o so_o evident_a there_o have_v be_v great_a dispute_n and_o contention_n whence_o have_v rise_v that_o diversity_n also_o of_o the_o sect_n of_o platonist_n peripatetic_n stoic_n epicurean_o and_o such_o like_a wherefore_o see_v that_o the_o happy_a inhabitant_n of_o heaven_n do_v see_v evident_o the_o divine_a nature_n &_o all_o the_o mystery_n which_o we_o only_o believe_v i_o marvel_v not_o that_o they_o all_o aggree_n in_o one_o opinion_n because_o the_o evidence_n of_o these_o thing_n move_v they_o to_o to_o one_o assent_n but_o that_o so_o many_o christian_n of_o so_o diverse_a country_n and_o time_n so_o diverse_o affect_v and_o dispose_v shall_v aggree_v in_o one_o faith_n and_o opinion_n and_o think_v and_o believe_v the_o same_o of_o all_o the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n which_o they_o see_v not_o this_o seem_v to_o i_o most_o admirable_a and_o so_o strange_a that_o i_o must_v needs_o say_v ●_o exod_n ●_o digitus_fw-la des_n hic_fw-la the_o finger_n of_o god_n be_v in_o this_o matter_n and_o he_o it_o be_v that_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o peace_n unity_n prologi_fw-la scotus_n q._n 2._o prologi_fw-la and_o aggreement_n for_o see_v that_o the_o evidence_n of_o our_o mystery_n cause_v not_o this_o aggreement_n and_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v the_o devil_n who_o thus_o link_v their_o understanding_n because_o this_o religion_n in_o all_o point_n be_v repugnant_a to_o he_o and_o his_o designment_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v god_n who_o inspire_v into_o these_o diverse_a nation_n and_o nature_n one_o light_n of_o faith_n make_v they_o all_o to_o conspire_v in_o one_o belief_n and_o opinion_n and_o therefore_o say_v tertulian_n nullus_fw-la inter_fw-la multos_fw-la eventus_fw-la unus_fw-la est_fw-la exitus_fw-la 28._o l._n praesc_fw-la 28._o errare_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la qui_fw-la ita_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la conspirant_a there_o be_v not_o one_o end_n amongst_o many_o chance_n they_o can_v not_o err_v who_o thus_o aggree_n in_o one_o thus_o we_o prove_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o septuagint_n to_o be_v of_o god_n gentleman_n justinus_n oraet_fw-la paraen_fw-la ad_fw-la gentleman_n because_o those_o diverse_a writer_n be_v place_v in_o diverse_a cell_n and_o forbid_v to_o confer_v can_v never_o have_v so_o agree_v in_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n out_o of_o hebrew_n into_o greek_a as_o if_o all_o their_o translation_n have_v be_v copy_v out_o of_o one_o had_z nor_o god_n direct_v their_o understanding_n and_o inspire_v they_o a_o like_a since_o then_o amongst_o the_o catholic_n only_o this_o unity_n be_v to_o be_v find_v they_o only_o be_v the_o true_a church_n to_o which_o christ_n have_v bequeath_v this_o peace_n and_o unity_n and_o they_o only_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o primative_a church_n plant_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n 4._o act._n 4._o for_o then_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v of_o one_o hart_n and_o mind_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o amongst_o the_o new_a christian_n of_o this_o age_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o wrangle_n and_o dissension_n and_o that_o in_o principal_a matter_n of_o religion_n their_o church_n be_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n and_o they_o no_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n but_o heretic_n apostate_n and_o member_n cut_v of_o for_o by_o this_o mark_n of_o dissension_n the_o ancient_a heretic_n be_v ever_o know_v and_o descry_v to_o be_v heretic_n simon_n magus_n the_o first_o famous_a archheretic_n begin_v a_o sect_n but_o it_o remain_v not_o one_o for_o any_o time_n but_o by_o and_o by_o degenerate_v into_o many_o and_o from_o the_o simonian_o proceed_v the_o menandrian_o saturninian_o basilidian_o carpocratians_n and_o from_o they_o be_v descend_v the_o gnostic_n from_o cerinthus_n spring_v the_o unappy_a branch_n of_o the_o ebionits_n marcionit_n cerdonist_n and_o such_o like_a the_o arian_n be_v no_o soon_o hatch_v but_o they_o be_v by_o and_o by_o divide_v into_o aetian_o eudoxian_o eunomian●_n and_o diverse_a other_o so_o variable_a they_o be_v 12._o l._n 2._o c_o 12._o that_o socrates_n report_v that_o they_o change_v their_o creed_n and_o form_n of_o belief_n no_o less_o than_o nine_o time_n the_o donatist_n likewise_o be_v by_o and_o by_o part_v into_o rogatist_n maximinianist_n and_o circumcellion_n the_o nestorian_n be_v sever_v into_o
follow_v evident_o out_o of_o their_o permise_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o commandment_n be_v impossible_a &_o what_o think_v you_o do_v he_o answer_v to_o it_o or_o how_o do_v he_o free_a god_n goodness_n from_o cruelty_n he_o say_v that_o by_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o grace_n arbitrio_fw-la l._n de_fw-fr seruo_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la it_o be_v unsoluble_a how_o god_n damn_v he_o who_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o sin_n and_o transgress_v and_o here_o say_v he_o both_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o grace_n do_v tell_v we_o that_o the_o fault_n be_v in_o god_n only_o and_o not_o in_o miserable_a man_n but_o by_o the_o light_n of_o glory_n which_o the_o bless_a enjoy_v god_n justice_n herein_o be_v manifest_v which_o now_o seemethe_v injustice_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la yea_o sayethe_v he_o god_n justice_n in_o this_o point_n be_v now_o incomprehensible_a so_o that_o luther_n say_v that_o now_o nether_a by_o light_n of_o nature_n nor_o of_o grace_n that_o be_v faith_n for_o so_o i_o think_v be_v his_o meaning_n in_o his_o obscure_a distinction_n we_o can_v excuse_v god_n from_o injustice_n and_o cruelty_n who_o command_v thing_n impossible_a which_o we_o can_v not_o perform_v and_o yet_o punish_v we_o eternal_o and_o true_o if_o it_o be_v so_o as_o they_o say_v that_o god_n command_v impossibility_n and_o yet_o punish_v and_o damn_v the_o transgressor_n than_o not_o only_o by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o grace_n but_o by_o all_o light_n and_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v manifest_v that_o god_n be_v most_o cruel_a and_o tyrannical_a for_o if_o that_o master_n be_v cruel_a and_o barbarouse_v who_n command_v his_o servant_n that_o be_v lame_a to_o run_v or_o leap_v and_o because_o he_o do_v not_o so_o beat_v he_o black_a and_o blue_a break_v his_o bone_n &_o in_o fine_a kill_v he_o also_o they_o certes_o god_n himself_o who_n command_v we_o impossibility_n and_o for_o not_o do_v they_o do_v not_o only_o punish_v we_o temporal_o but_o also_o damn_v we_o perpetual_o and_o condemn_v we_o to_o those_o eternal_a flame_n of_o hell_n where_o we_o shall_v ever_o feel_v the_o pang_n of_o death_n and_o yet_o never_o die_v where_o we_o shall_v alway_n be_v die_v and_o never_o dead_a where_o after_o million_o of_o year_n of_o imprisonment_n &_o torment_n we_o be_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o near_a an_o end_n of_o our_o misery_n he_o i_o say_v must_v needs_o be_v most_o cruel_a and_o inhuman_a more_o barbarouse_v then_o any_o scythian_a and_o so_o tyrannical_a that_o in_o respect_n of_o he_o nero_n domitian_n and_o dionysius_n be_v no_o tyrant_n but_o clement_a prince_n the_o fifte_a chapter_n make_v it_o manifest_a that_o the_o reformer_n pull_v the_o true_a god_n out_o of_o his_o throne_n and_o place_v a_o idol_n in_o the_o same_o of_o their_o own_o imagination_n tertulian_n that_o ancient_a and_o learned_a writer_n when_o he_o be_v best_o dispose_v that_o be_v when_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o a_o writer_n against_o heretic_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o all_o heresy_n be_v idolatry_n and_o all_o heretic_n idolatour_n which_o opinion_n though_o at_o the_o first_o blush_v it_o may_v seem_v to_o rigorous_a yea_o erroneous_a yet_o if_o it_o be_v well_o weigh_v and_o consider_v it_o may_v very_o true_o be_v verify_v of_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n and_o of_o this_o our_o unhappy_a age_n and_o in_o some_o sort_n of_o all_o heretic_n what_o soever_o but_o before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o his_o opinion_n we_o will_v first_o set_v it_o down_o in_o his_o own_o word_n which_o be_v these_o 4●_n l._n praesc_fw-la c._n 4●_n ether_n they_o feign_v another_o god_n to_o the_o creator_n as_o the_o marcioniste_n do_v or_o if_o they_o confess_v the_o only_a creator_n they_o declare_v he_o otherwise_o then_o in_o deed_n he_o be_v so_o every_o error_n concern_v god_n be_v in_o some_o fort_n a_o variation_n of_o a_o kind_n of_o idolatry_n by_o which_o ch_o appeareth_z that_o in_o his_o opinion_n every_o heresy_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o idolatry_n and_o true_o there_o be_v no_o heresy_n but_o either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o it_o deny_v the_o true_a god_n for_o either_o it_o deny_v some_o thing_n in_o god_n and_o then_o it_o direct_o deny_v god_n or_o it_o deny_v some_o thing_n which_o pertain_v unto_o god_n and_o so_o indirect_o and_o by_o a_o certain_a consequeace_n it_o take_v away_o the_o true_a god_n as_o for_o example_n the_o marcionite_n affirm_v that_o god_n be_v cruel_a and_o that_o the_o good_a god_n be_v not_o creator_n of_o this_o inferior_a world_n which_o contain_v the_o fowre_a element_n and_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v compound_v of_o they_o and_o see_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o god_n who_o be_v cruel_a or_o who_o be_v not_o the_o creator_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n they_o deny_v the_o true_a god_n and_o confess_v a_o idol_n of_o their_o own_o imagination_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o arian_n deny_v that_o god_n the_o father_n have_v a_o son_n coequal_a and_o consubstantial_a unto_o he_o and_o see_v that_o the_o true_a god_n be_v one_o god_n which_o be_v the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o arrian_n in_o deny_v the_o second_o person_n to_o be_v god_n coequal_a with_o the_o father_n deny_v the_o true_a god_n because_o the_o true_a god_n be_v not_o distincte_n in_o nature_n from_o god_n the_o son_n and_o they_o adore_v a_o idol_n of_o their_o own_o imagination_n that_o be_v a_o god_n who_o have_v no_o son_n or_o not_o coequal_a and_o consubstantial_a unto_o he_o arianos_fw-es ser._n 3._o &_o 4._o send_v arianos_fw-es wherefore_o athanasius_n complain_v that_o the_o arrian_n under_o pretence_n of_o religion_n have_v bring_v in_o idolatry_n and_o abandon_v baptism_n which_o can_v not_o be_v equal_o minister_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o those_o three_o person_n be_v not_o all_o equal_a in_o deity_n and_o dignity_n other_o heretic_n there_o be_v which_o hold_v no_o error_n concern_v the_o divinity_n or_o any_o divine_a person_n and_o so_o can_v not_o be_v say_v directe_o to_o deny_v the_o true_a god_n but_o yet_o indirect_o they_o deny_v he_o by_o deny_v some_o verity_n which_o have_v a_o connexion_n with_o he_o as_o for_o example_n novatianus_n who_n say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o remedy_n against_o sin_n after_o baptism_n direct_o only_o deny_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n but_o yet_o indirect_o and_o by_o a_o certain_a consequence_n he_o deny_v god_n because_o it_o be_v not_o a_o true_a god_n which_o will_v not_o accept_v of_o penance_n after_o baptism_n and_o therefore_o see_v that_o he_o confess_v only_o such_o a_o god_n he_o adore_v a_o false_a god_n and_o so_o be_v a_o idolator_n nestorius_n also_o who_v say_v that_o in_o christ_n beside_o the_o divine_a person_n there_o be_v also_o a_o human_a person_n and_o consequent_o twoe_n person_n direct_o deny_v the_o unity_n of_o christ_n person_n and_o affirm_v twoe_n person_n in_o christ_n but_o indirect_o he_o deny_v christ_n and_o consequent_o god_n because_o christ_n be_v god_n and_o man_n in_o one_o &_o the_o self_n same_o person_n and_o therefore_o he_o adore_v a_o christ_n consist_v of_o twoe_n person_n adore_v a_o false_a christ_n and_o consequent_o a_o false_a god_n and_o so_o be_v a_o idolator_n m●t_n 22._o q._n 2._o a._n 2._o add_v 〈◊〉_d l._n 9_o m●t_n s._n thomas_n give_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o because_o say_v he_o and_o he_o allege_v aristotle_n for_o more_o authority_n god_n be_v a_o thing_n infinite_a in_o perfection_n yet_o so_o simple_a and_o devoide_a of_o composition_n that_o in_o he_o be_v no_o distinction_n but_o of_o person_n which_o also_o be_v one_o indivisible_a god_n and_o therefore_o as_o a_o indivisible_a point_n be_v altogether_o touch_v or_o not_o at_o all_o because_o it_o have_v no_o part_n so_o our_o understanding_n either_o right_o attain_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n or_o not_o at_o all_o and_o if_o it_o err_v in_o one_o perfection_n of_o god_n it_o err_v in_o all_o because_o all_o be_v one_o and_o so_o if_o a_o heretic_n deni_v any_o thing_n of_o god_n he_o deny_v all_o but_o although_o all_o heretic_n be_v in_o some_o fort_n idolatour_n yet_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n betwixt_v they_o and_o pagans_n for_o these_o man_n deny_v the_o true_a god_n in_o express_a term_n and_o adore_v some_o creature_n for_o god_n as_o jupiter_n or_o the_o planet_n or_o some_o such_o like_a but_o heretic_n only_o affirm_v some_o thing_n of_o god_n which_o impli_v a_o denial_n of_o the_o true_a god_n yet_o they_o profess_v in_o word_n religion_n unto_o
demonstrate_v book_n see_v the_o three_o book_n they_o assure_v their_o scholar_n also_o that_o the_o justify_n faith_n be_v a_o full_a assurance_n of_o justice_n salvation_n and_o election_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o their_o own_o word_n which_o i_o have_v in_o this_o seven_o book_n already_o set_v down_o which_o also_o give_v great_a occasion_n of_o a_o insolent_a pride_n for_o if_o when_o we_o persuade_v ourselves_o as_o catholic_n do_v that_o we_o be_v nether_a sure_a what_o now_o we_o be_v before_o god_n nor_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o we_o hereafter_o we_o have_v occasion_n to_o humiliate_v ourselves_o 2._o phil._n 2._o and_o to_o work_v our_o salvation_n in_o fear_n then_o certes_o he_o that_o persuadethe_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v cocksure_o of_o his_o salvation_n have_v great_a occasion_n to_o become_v careless_a arrogaunte_o haughty_a and_o high-mynded_n 186._o greg_n l._n 6._o reg_n c._n 186._o we_o have_v a_o example_n of_o a_o noble_a woman_n call_v gregoria_n maid_n of_o honour_n to_o the_o empress_n w●oe_v have_v conceive_v high_o of_o saint_n gregory_n sanctity_n write_v unto_o he_o to_o impart_v unto_o she_o a_o secret_a to_o wit_n whether_o her_o sin_n be_v forgive_v or_o no_o but_o saint_n gregory_n answer_v she_o that_o she_o demand_v of_o he_o a_o hard_a and_o unprofitable_a question_n hard_a because_o his_o sanct_n tie_n be_v not_o such_o as_o to_o deserve_v a_o revelation_n from_o god_n of_o so_o secret_a a_o matter_n unprofitable_a because_o say_v he_o such_o a_o revelation_n unto_o you_o be_v not_o expedient_a better_a it_o be_v that_o you_o shall_v be_v ignorant_a of_o that_o till_o the_o last_o day_n which_o must_v alway_n be_v fear_v &_o suspect_v that_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n you_o may_v wash_v away_o your_o sin_n by_o tear_n of_o contrition_n ●_o see_v the_o first_o book_n ●hap_n ●_o they_o affirm_v also_o that_o every_o man_n have_v a_o private_a spirit_n by_o which_o he_o be_v sure_o which_o be_v true_a scripture_n and_o what_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n thereof_o who_o therefore_o be_v he_o man_n or_o woman_n clerk_n or_o cobbler_n be_v supreme_a judge_n of_o religion_n and_o be_v to_o rely_v nether_a on_o pope_n nor_o church_n nor_o council_n for_o faith_n and_o religion_n which_o doctrine_n how_o high_a it_o be_v able_a to_o enhance_v the_o spirit_n of_o man_n that_o be_v so_o persuade_v a_o blind_a man_n may_v see_v and_o this_o be_v the_o very_a cause_n why_o luther_n will_v judge_v both_o of_o church_n and_o counsel_n and_o prefer_v his_o own_o judgement_n before_o they_o all_o 3._o see_v the_o first_o book_n chap._n 3._o for_o although_o he_o say_v only_o that_o by_o scripture_n he_o will_v judge_v father_n church_n apostle_n &_o angel_n also_o yet_o see_v that_o the_o controversy_n be_v not_o whether_o father_n or_o scripture_n be_v to_o believe_v because_o they_o be_v never_o contrary_a but_o rather_o whether_o luther_n or_o they_o better_o understand_v the_o scripture_n he_o make_v he_o self_n in_o effect_n judge_n of_o church_n pope_n council_n father_n and_o angel_n wherein_o how_o brave_o he_o play_v the_o part_n of_o lucifer_n it_o be_v as_o evident_a as_o that_o luther_n and_o lucifer_n begin_v with_o a_o letter_n the_o thirteen_o chapter_n show_v how_o their_o doctrine_n induce_v man_n to_o idleness_n yea_o how_o idleness_n according_a their_o doctrine_n be_v the_o perfection_n of_o a_o christian_a life_n all_o creature_n be_v create_v to_o work_n &_o labour_n and_o so_o they_o must_v attain_v unto_o their_o end_n and_o perfection_n because_o god_n and_o nature_n have_v so_o ordain_v it_o the_o angelical_a spirit_n like_o bird_n in_o the_o spring-tyme_n for_o heaven_n be_v a_o continual_a springtide_n sing_v praise_n unto_o their_o creator_n and_o attend_v continual_o upon_o the_o divine_a majesty_n on_o high_a yet_o so_o that_o they_o have_v also_o a_o eye_n unto_o our_o affair_n and_o necessity_n in_o this_o lower_n world_n for_o the_o suprem_a angel_n receve_v illumination_n from_o god_n which_o they_o impart_v unto_o the_o inferior_a which_o be_v alway_v occupy_v in_o guard_v and_o defend_v we_o and_o menage_v our_o affair_n and_o so_o either_o mediate_o or_o immediate_o they_o be_v administratorij_fw-la spiritus_fw-la ●_o heb._n ●_o administer_a spirit_n the_o heaven_n move_v continual_o for_o the_o better_a and_o more_o equal_a bestow_a of_o their_o light_n and_o influence_n upon_o this_o inferior_a world_n the_o son_n leave_v our_o hemisphere_n at_o night_n not_o to_o sleep_v or_o to_o rest_v himself_o but_o to_o run_v another_o course_n in_o the_o other_o hemisphere_n for_o the_o illuminate_n of_o those_o that_o be_v antipode_n unto_o we_o which_o course_n be_v run_v he_o retourne_v to_o we_o in_o the_o morning_n &_o so_o be_v never_o idle_a the_o moon_n every_o monethe_n end_n her_o course_n &_o every_o star_n and_o planet_n have_v his_o task_n appoint_v he_o which_o in_o a_o certain_a time_n he_o must_v accomplish_v the_o earth_n when_o he_o be_v out_o of_o his_o place_n move_v down_o ward_n to_o the_o centre_n and_o when_o by_o force_n he_o be_v detain_v he_o show_v by_o his_o wait_n what_o a_o inclination_n he_o have_v unto_o his_o proper_a motion_n the_o fire_n mount_v above_o all_o towards_o the_o concavitie_n of_o the_o moon_n which_o be_v his_o natural_a place_n the_o water_n and_o air_n take_v up_o the_o middle_a room_n where_o and_o whether_o they_o move_v continual_o tree_n plant_n and_o herb_n seem_v in_o winter_n to_o take_v their_o rest_n after_o their_o former_a labour_n and_o in_o the_o spring_n time_n they_o fall_v to_o work_v again_o and_o first_o they_o bring_v forth_o leaf_n than_o bloom_n and_o blossom_n and_o last_o the_o sweet_a fruit_n of_o their_o labour_n brute_n beast_n beside_o the_o labour_n to_o which_o by_o man_n they_o be_v appoint_v have_v their_o own_o proper_a exercise_n in_o which_o they_o occupy_v themselves_o the_o bee_n be_v not_o so_o big_a in_o body_n as_o busy_v in_o operation_n in_o so_o much_o that_o when_o we_o will_v describe_v a_o laborious_a man_n we_o say_v that_o he_o be_v as_o busy_a as_o a_o bee_n these_o little_a creature_n what_o pain_n take_v they_o in_o gather_v their_o honey_n in_o make_v their_o comb_n in_o dispose_v and_o work_v their_o honey_n and_o while_o some_o be_v work_v abroad_o to_o bring_v home_o the_o matter_n of_o honey_n some_o stay_n at_o home_n to_o order_v it_o some_o watch_n for_o the_o security_n of_o they_o that_o labour_n and_o all_o be_v incense_v against_o the_o idle_a drone_n and_o do_v not_o only_a expelle_fw-fr they_o out_o of_o their_o company_n but_o punish_v they_o also_o severe_o even_o unto_o death_n itself_o 6._o prou_z 6._o the_o ant_n also_o of_o who_o the_o scripture_n bid_v the_o idle_a parson_n to_o learn_v his_o lesson_n labour_v in_o the_o summer_n to_o make_v provision_n for_o that_o on_o which_o he_o be_v to_o live_v in_o winter_n so_o laborious_a be_v these_o little_a creature_n that_o many_o time_n they_o carry_v burden_n big_a than_o themselves_o 1._o plin_n l._n ●●_o c._n 1._o horat._n l._n 1._o satyr_n 1._o and_o that_o with_o such_o diligence_n that_o with_o pass_v often_o time_n one_o way_n their_o little_a foot_n do_v make_v a_o path_n to_o appear_v even_o in_o the_o flint_n and_o when_o amongst_o other_o provision_n they_o have_v bring_v home_o their_o corn_n to_o their_o barn_n they_o be_v not_o idle_a after_o harvest_n be_v do_v but_o sometime_o they_o be_v occupy_v in_o nibble_v upon_o the_o end_n of_o the_o corn_n and_o grain_n lest_o they_o shall_v grow_v a_o fresh_a and_o lest_o that_o the_o moisture_n of_o the_o earth_n corrupt_v their_o corn_n they_o bring_v it_o forth_o in_o a_o sunny_a day_n to_o dry_v and_o afterward_n they_o carry_v it_o again_o into_o their_o granary_n bird_n build_v their_o own_o nest_n and_o fly_v far_o and_o often_o for_o the_o timber_n and_o mortar_n which_o be_v belong_v unto_o the_o make_n of_o such_o a_o palace_n coney_n work_v their_o burrow_n out_o of_o the_o ground_n and_o there_o be_v no_o creature_n which_o be_v not_o depute_v to_o work_v in_o one_o kind_n or_o other_o and_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o man_n felicity_n consist_v in_o idleness_n no_o no_o as_o the_o bird_n be_v bread_n to_o fly_v so_o man_n be_v bear_v to_o work_n and_o labour_n ●_o job._n ●_o in_o so_o much_o that_o god_n appoint_v adam_n his_o task_n in_o paradise_n which_o be_v to_o labour_n &_o till_o the_o ground_n which_o labour_v notwithstanding_o shall_v have_v be_v no_o pain_n but_o rather_o a_o pleasure_n and_o recreation_n unto_o he_o for_o if_o cirus_n king_n of_o the_o persian_n take_v such_o delight_n in_o garden_v in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o cast_v the_o bed_n and_o knot_n of_o his_o own_o garden_n set_v his_o
intend_a conclusion_n which_o i_o may_v do_v with_o as_o much_o brevity_n as_o facility_n for_o if_o god_n be_v the_o autour_fw-fr of_o all_o sin_n then_o if_o we_o may_v gather_v what_o the_o tree_n be_v by_o the_o fruit_n he_o be_v of_o a_o malicious_a nature_n as_o be_v before_o prove_v and_o if_o he_o command_v we_o impossibility_n and_o punish_v we_o with_o hell_n fire_n for_o not_o fulfil_n they_o than_o be_v he_o unreasonable_a cruel_a and_o barbarous_a and_o if_o we_o once_o make_v this_o conceit_n of_o god_n as_o we_o must_v needs_o if_o we_o believe_v the_o adversary_n opinion_n then_o must_v our_o heart_n of_o necessity_n be_v cold_a in_o religion_n and_o worship_v of_o god_n for_o who_o can_v be_v induce_v to_o worship_v love_n and_o honour_v such_o a_o god_n in_o who_o be_v nothing_o which_o be_v amiable_a nothing_o worthy_a honour_n well_o may_v we_o fear_v he_o for_o his_o cruelty_n but_o love_v he_o and_o honour_v he_o from_o the_o heart_n we_o can_v not_o and_o so_o religion_n fallethe_v the_o three_o chapter_n show_v that_o in_o contempt_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n they_o bring_v all_o religion_n in_o contempt_n it_o be_v a_o maxim_n and_o almost_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n receve_v amongst_o the_o reformer_n that_o the_o true_a church_n which_o once_o be_v have_v err_v grosselye_o &_o in_o no_o lesser_a matter_n than_o faith_n justification_n merit_n freewill_n work_n satisfaction_n purgatory_n prayer_n to_o saint_n worship_n of_o image_n number_n and_o virtue_n of_o sacrament_n sacrifice_n &_o such_o like_a yea_o they_o confess_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v once_o the_o true_a church_n but_o thy_o add_v with_o all_o that_o afterward_n it_o err_v gross_o and_o fall_v sowlye_v &_o now_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v become_v the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o devil_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o when_o we_o urge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a and_o present_a church_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n free_a will_n prayer_n to_o saint_n &_o sacrifice_v of_o the_o mass_n they_o answer_v we_o that_o the_o church_n be_v but_o a_o congregation_n of_o man_n which_o have_v err_v in_o these_o and_o other_o matter_n and_o therefore_o luther_n care_v not_o for_o a_o thousand_o church_n and_o caluin_n beza_n and_o other_o despise_v all_o the_o council_n and_o ancient_a father_n as_o appearethe_v by_o their_o word_n which_o be_v relate_v in_o the_o first_o book_n and_o the_o three_o and_o four_o chapter_n so_o that_o upon_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n they_o will_v not_o hang_v their_o faith_n as_o they_o say_v lest_o they_o hang_v their_o soul_n because_o the_o church_n as_o it_o may_v be_v deceve_v so_o it_o may_v deceve_v i_o demand_v of_o they_o therefore_o what_o assurance_n they_o have_v of_o scripture_n and_o by_o what_o mean_v they_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o a_o catholic_a will_v say_v that_o he_o beleevethe_v these_o book_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v it_o the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n which_o by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v promise_v a_o spirit_n which_o shall_v teach_v she_o all_o verity_n ●_o 10.14.15_o l._n on_o it_o epist_n fund_z c._n ●_o have_v cuer_v so_o beleened_a and_o define_v wherefore_o saint_n austin_n say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o church_n authority_n move_v he_o not_o that_o the_o church_n make_v scripture_n or_o give_v they_o their_o truth_n and_o verity_n for_o that_o they_o have_v of_o god_n who_o be_v the_o indight_a of_o they_o but_o because_o we_o can_v not_o know_v which_o be_v scripture_n which_o be_v not_o but_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n to_o which_o only_o in_o this_o matter_n the_o ancient_a father_n be_v wont_a to_o harken_v as_o ireneus_fw-la 11._o l._n 2_o c_o 2_o 3._o 4._o l_o pr●esc_n de_fw-fr expos_fw-fr symb._n l._n 2_o c_o 1._o 46._o l._n 4._o c_o 11._o tertulian_n saint_n hierom_n leo_n the_o first_o and_o deuer_n other_o of_o who_o nicephorus_n make_v mention_v wherefore_o the_o first_o toletane_v council_n in_o the_o one_o and_o twentieth_n canon_n accurse_v they_o who_o accept_v of_o any_o other_o scripture_n they_o those_o which_o the_o catholic_a church_n receive_v he_o will_v allege_v for_o a_o argument_n that_o christemade_v peter_n &_o his_o successor_n the_o pope_n supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o command_v he_o to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n 2._o lo._n 2._o and_o see_v that_o a_o principal_a office_n of_o the_o shepherd_n be_v to_o show_v they_o such_o pastur_n as_o be_v most_o holsom_a for_o they_o it_o pertain_v to_o the_o ●uprem_a pastoure_n of_o the_o church_n to_o tell_v we_o infallible_o which_o be_v the_o true_a scripture_n for_o when_o he_o declare_v w_z ch_o be_v the_o true_a scripture_n he_o show_v we_o our_o pasture_n &_o the_o place_n where_o we_o be_v to_o graze_v and_o when_o he_o expoundethe_v they_o he_o feedethe_v us._n and_o see_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v this_o pastor_n as_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o book_n it_o follow_v that_o we_o must_v receve_v that_o for_o scripture_n which_o he_o allow_v of_o as_o scripture_n he_o will_v allege_v also_o the_o antiquity_n of_o scripture_n for_o a_o proof_n of_o their_o sincerity_n 24._o l._n 2._o cont_n ap._n 〈…〉_o prabar_fw-la euangel_n in_o apolog_n c_o 19_o 20._o 24._o because_o moses_n who_n be_v the_o writer_n of_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o josephus_n tertulian_n and_o eusebius_n affirm_v by_o many_o handred_a year_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o all_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o grecian_n also_o w_o ch_o therefore_o deserve_v great_a credit_n &_o reverence_n tuse_a 1_o tuse_a because_o as_o cicero_n say_v in_o his_o tusculane_n question_n to_o antiquity_n no_o less_o be_v dew_a he_o will_v confirm_v this_o argument_n by_o another_o of_o no_o less_o efficacy_n to_o wit_n that_o these_o book_n have_v be_v conserve_v so_o many_o thousand_o year_n not_o withstand_v so_o many_o captivity_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o persecution_n of_o the_o christian_n which_o argue_v that_o god_n who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o they_o have_v a_o special_a care_n of_o they_o and_o a_o vigilant_a eye_n unto_o they_o as_o unto_o his_o own_o word_n and_o writing_n he_o may_v allege_v also_o the_o comformitie_n of_o those_o book_n which_o be_v indite_v of_o diverse_a &_o at_o diverse_a time_n and_o yet_o have_v in_o they_o no_o contrariety_n and_o be_v translate_v out_o of_o hebrew_n into_o latin_a by_o 70_o interpreter_n gen●●●_n ●nstin_a orat_fw-la paroen_fw-mi ad_fw-la gen●●●_n diverse_o dispose_v who_o yet_o not_o withstand_v so_o agree_v as_o if_o all_o their_o translation_n have_v be_v copy_v out_o of_o one_o for_o which_o cause_v even_o the_o gentile_n &_o pagan_n themselves_o have_v bear_v great_a respect_n unto_o these_o write_n not_o dare_v to_o mingle_v they_o with_o their_o ꝓphane_a write_n because_o as_o josephus_n and_o eusebius_n affirm_v some_o that_o have_v attempt_v it_o ●_o l_o ●●_o aut._n c._n 1._o ●_o l._n ●_o praepar●_n ●_o by_o the_o divine_a and_o secret_a power_n have_v be_v very_o sharp_o and_o severe_o punish_v all_o w_z ch_o be_v warrant_v by_o history_n &_o tradition_n this_o a_o catholic_a will_v say_v with_o great_a applause_n and_o no_o less_o probability_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n but_o what_o will_v or_o what_o can_v our_o reformer_n say_v will_v they_o say_v with_o the_o catholic_a that_o they_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v holy_a scripture_n because_o the_o church_n say_v so_o brent_n ●●_o host●_n l._n 3._o ●●nt_fw-la brent_n luther_n in_o deed_n say_v that_o he_o in_o this_o point_n beleevethe_v the_o church_n and_o pope_n and_o good_a reason_n have_v he_o because_o of_o whon_n do_v he_o receve_v the_o scripture_n when_o he_o begin_v first_o to_o preach_v his_o new_a doctrine_n but_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o cuer_v have_v the_o custody_n of_o they_o even_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o how_o can_v he_o know_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o nazaren_n of_o saint_n barnabas_n 25._o euseb_n l._n ●_o c._n 25._o and_o saint_n thomas_n be_v not_o as_o rrue_v scripture_n as_o the_o gospel_n of_o saint_n matthew_n and_o other_o evangelist_n but_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n allow_v of_o these_o and_o not_o of_o those_o for_o this_o cause_n some_o of_o they_o do_v say_v that_o in_o this_o point_n they_o must_v needs_o believe_v the_o pope_n &_o roman_a church_n because_o they_o can_v not_o in_o deed_n have_v any_o probable_a knowledge_n of_o scripture_n but_o by_o this_o mean_n as_o shall_v appear_v by_o the_o refutation_n of_o all_o other_o mean_n which_o they_o
and_o other_o contemn_a scripture_n both_o for_o the_o phrase_n and_o matter_n and_o esteem_v no_o more_o of_o they_o than_o we_o do_v of_o aesop_n fable_n they_o may_v answer_v i_o peradventure_o and_o now_o i_o know_v not_o what_o else_o they_o can_v answer_v that_o the_o spirit_n assurethe_v they_o that_o these_o book_n &_o no_o other_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o against_o this_o spirit_n i_o have_v dispute_v at_o large_a in_o the_o ●rst_a book_n and_o three_o chapter_n and_o so_o i_o may_v refer_v the_o reformer_n and_o the_o reader_n unto_o my_o argument_n where_o with_o in_o the_o afore_o say_v place_n i_o have_v refute_v this_o fantastical_a spirit_n yet_o to_o ease_v they_o both_o of_o that_o labour_n i_o will_v in_o a_o word_n reject_v this_o answer_v by_o reject_v this_o spirit_n i_o will_v ask_v of_o he_o that_o think_v himself_o most_o deeplye_n inspire_v why_o bee_n believe_v this_o his_o own_o private_a spirit_n rather_o than_o the_o common_a spirit_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o see_v that_o it_o be_v more_o like_a that_o god_n will_v more_o ample_o communicate_v his_o spirit_n to_o his_o church_n then_o to_o a_o private_a man_n and_o if_o the_o church_n may_v be_v deceve_v as_o they_o say_v she_o may_v not_o with_o stand_v that_o christ_n promise_v she_o a_o spirit_n which_o shall_v teach_v she_o all_o verity_n 14.15_o io._n 14.15_o why_o may_v not_o every_o private_a man_n doubt_n at_o least_o lest_o his_o own_o private_a spirit_n be_v a_o lie_a and_o deceive_a spirit_n he_o answer_v that_o his_o spirit_n assure_v he_o that_o it_o be_v a_o true_a spirit_n but_o how_o do_v it_o assure_v he_o by_o what_o reason_n miracle_n or_o revelation_n by_o no_o such_o mean_n say_v he_o it_o do_v assure_v i_o but_o yet_o i_o be_o sure_a why_o be_v thou_o sure_a if_o nether_a for_o reason_n nor_o miracle_n nor_o revelation_n then_o be_v thou_o sure_a only_a because_o thou_o think_v thyself_o sure_a and_o so_o do_v suenlkfeldius_n think_v himself_o sure_a of_o a_o right_a spirit_n when_o he_o deny_v all_o scripture_n and_o will_v be_v rule_v only_o by_o the_o inward_a spirit_n and_o yet_o he_o for_o all_o his_o suerne_n be_v deceve_v and_o consequent_o so_o may_v thou_o be_v though_o thou_o think_v thyself_o assure_v and_o do_v not_o all_o heretic_n think_v then_o self_n to_o be_v inspire_v with_o the_o right_a spirit_n as_o they_o therefore_o be_v deceve_v so_o may_v thou_o be_v unless_o thou_o have_v some_o certain_a rule_n and_o judge_n such_o as_o the_o church_n be_v to_o acertaine_a thou_o of_o thy_o spirit_n if_o now_o some_o infidel_n or_o atheist_n will_v deny_v the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v holy_a scripture_n how_o will_v thou_o convince_v they_o what_o a_o catholic_a can_v say_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o scripture_n i_o have_v already_o declare_v i_o demand_v therefore_o what_o thou_o who_o take_v upon_o the_o to_o be_v a_o reform_a christian_a can_v allege_v for_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n will_v thou_o allege_v the_o church_n definition_n or_o tradition_n or_o common_a consent_n he_o will_v say_v tush_o tell_v i_o not_o of_o church_n tradition_n father_n counsel_n all_o these_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n may_v err_v and_o have_v err_v in_o other_o as_o great_a matter_n as_o this_o and_o therefore_o this_o can_v be_v no_o sufficient_a warrant_a will_v thou_o say_v that_o scripture_n give_v testimony_n of_o her_o self_n that_o she_o be_v scripture_n he_o will_v ask_v thou_o where_n and_o thou_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o quote_v the_o place_n &_o if_o thou_o can_v yet_o he_o will_v say_v that_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v in_o she_o own_o cause_n and_o that_o as_o he_o doubt_v of_o scripture_n so_o he_o doubt_v whether_o it_o be_v scripture_n w_z ch_o affirmethe_v these_o book_n to_o be_v scripture_n will_v thou_o say_v that_o the_o phrase_n of_o scripture_n argue_v it_o to_o be_v god_n his_o own_o word_n he_o will_v tell_v thou_o that_o he_o will_v show_v thou_o as_o good_a phrase_n in_o tully_n livy_n &_o other_o ꝓphane_a writer_n and_o if_o thou_o shall_v say_v that_o thy_o spirit_n assure_v thou_o that_o these_o book_n be_v of_o god_n own_o indight_v he_o will_v laugh_v at_o thou_o and_o tell_v thou_o that_o suenkfeldius_n by_o his_o spirit_n deny_v all_o scripture_n and_o that_o he_o have_v no_o more_o assurance_n of_o thy_o spirit_n then_o of_o he_o yea_o he_o will_v come_v upon_o thou_o with_a the_o common_a spirit_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o tell_v thou_o that_o if_o that_o spirit_n may_v deceve_v as_o thou_o say_v it_o may_v much_o more_o may_v thy_o private_a spirit_n deceve_v thou_o and_o all_o that_o will_v be_v so_o mad_a as_o to_o believe_v thou_o and_o so_o if_o thou_o contemn_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n thou_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o assure_v he_o no_o more_o of_o scripture_n then_o of_o a_o robin_n hood_n tale_n if_o the_o church_n authority_n then_o be_v reject_v as_o insufficient_a we_o have_v no_o probable_a assurance_n of_o scripture_n and_o so_o we_o may_v just_o doubt_n lest_o it_o be_v but_o some_o apocryphal_a writing_n w_z ch_o have_v hitherto_o be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o keep_v fool_n in_o awe_n and_o if_o we_o may_v doubt_n of_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n we_o may_v as_o just_o doubt_n of_o the_o content_n and_o so_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n christ_n life_n doctrine_n passion_n death_n and_o resurrection_n may_v be_v call_v in_o question_n and_o so_o christian_a religion_n fall_v and_o see_v that_o after_o a_o apostasy_n from_o christianity_n we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o embrace_v turcisnie_n or_o the_o judaical_a ceremony_n much_o less_o the_o superstition_n of_o pagan_n and_o idolatour_n adieu_v all_o religion_n and_o welcome_a atheism_n and_o thus_o thou_o see_v gentle_a reader_n how_o contempt_n of_o scripture_n must_v needs_o follow_v the_o contempt_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n which_o be_v lay_v a_o side_n we_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o probable_a assurance_n of_o scripture_n or_o christian_a religion_n wherefore_o let_v we_o hold_v fast_a with_o the_o catholic_a apostolic_a and_o roman_a church_n and_o let_v we_o never_o link_v ourselves_o in_o religion_n with_o the_o reformer_n who_o like_a chamme_n contemn_v their_o mother_n the_o church_n lest_o we_o be_v enforce_v to_o shake_v hand_n with_o atheist_n who_o friendship_n we_o can_v not_o refuse_v if_o we_o break_v amity_n and_o league_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o be_v most_o evident_o demonstrate_v the_o four_o chapter_n show_v that_o in_o admit_v some_o book_n of_o scripture_n and_o reject_v other_o they_o open_v the_o gap_n to_o contempt_n of_o all_o scripture_n and_o religion_n we_o say_v common_o that_o a_o liar_n have_v need_v to_o have_v a_o good_a memory_n for_o otherwise_o he_o be_v alway_v ready_a to_o speak_v not_o as_o the_o truth_n require_v but_o as_o he_o may_v best_o for_o the_o present_a serve_v his_o own_o turn_n will_v be_v in_o danger_n to_o contradict_v himself_o and_o to_o varye_v in_o his_o own_o tale_n for_o want_n of_o which_o memory_n the_o reformer_n do_v often_o eat_v their_o word_n and_o go_v from_o that_o which_o before_o they_o stand_v unto_o and_o amongst_o many_o other_o example_n this_o may_v serve_v for_o one_o that_o they_o will_v needs_o receve_v scripture_n at_o the_o roman_a church_n hand_n and_o for_o this_o point_n account_v her_o authority_n sufficient_a but_o their_o memory_n be_v so_o short_a that_o forget_v they_o self_n they_o will_v not_o accept_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o she_o have_v deliver_v unto_o they_o although_o they_o have_v not_o any_o other_o warrant_a of_o scripture_n than_o they_o have_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n authority_n i_o must_v therefore_o desire_v they_o better_a to_o remember_v themselves_o for_o if_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v of_o sufficient_a credit_n to_o warrant_v we_o of_o scripture_n why_o be_v not_o her_o authority_n a_o sufficient_a warrant_v also_o for_o the_o number_n of_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n or_o if_o she_o may_v err_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n she_o may_v err_v also_o in_o scripture_n and_o so_o if_o they_o will_v remember_v themselves_o better_a and_o tub_n their_o brow_n hard_a they_o will_v see_v plain_o that_o either_o they_o shall_v take_v all_o or_o none_o of_o she_o because_o her_o authority_n be_v as_o sufficient_a be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o to_o warrant_v we_o for_o the_o number_n of_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n as_o for_o scripture_n if_o they_o believe_v then_o that_o there_o be_v scripture_n because_o she_o
visible_a head_n here_o in_o earth_n pag._n 365._o christ_n do_v not_o suffer_v the_o pain_n of_o hell_n as_o caluin_n most_o impious_o contend_v that_o he_o do_v 337._o the_o reason_n why_o the_o church_n only_o shall_v judge_v of_o scripture_n deduce_v even_o from_o the_o donctrine_n of_o the_o reformer_n p._n 44._o why_o it_o be_v call_v apostolical_a 190._o diverse_a heretical_a opinion_n about_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o church_n 198._o a_o difference_n betwixt_v scripture_n and_o the_o church_n definition_n 43._o the_o true_a church_n can_v not_o be_v invisible_a p._n 206._o it_o be_v not_o confine_v as_o heretical_a sect_n be_v 231._o a_o contention_n betwixt_v the_o jew_n and_o samaritan_n resemblinge_a very_o well_o the_o controversye_n betwixt_v catholik_o and_o heretic_n 129._o the_o convenience_n that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n shall_v have_v a_o visible_a head●_n 133._o usq_n ad_fw-la 136._o the_o diverse_a office_n of_o conscience_n with_o the_o great_a sway_v it_o bear_v in_o all_o our_o action_n 58._o the_o reformer_n take_v it_o away_v 544._o the_o contrariety_n of_o caluins_n assertion_n and_o the_o scripture_n 594._o in_o what_o manner_n our_o cooperation_n in_o diverse_a kind_n be_v require_v notwithstanding_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o christ_n passion_n p._n 263._o the_o first_o council_n call_v in_o jerusalem_n by_o the_o apostle_n 189._o proof_n of_o a_o creation_n 648._o d_o the_o deceit_n that_o heretic_n use_v by_o place_n of_o scripture_n no_o sufficient_a warrant_n of_o sound_n doctrine_n to_o allege_v bare_a scripture_n for_o it_o 37._o diverse_a secrette_v derogation_n by_o luther_n from_o christ_n whereby_o he_o seem_v to_o pull_v at_o the_o divinity_n itself_o 24._o after_o what_o manner_n the_o devil_n do_v the_o seek_v to_o imitate_v christ_n by_o heretic_n 30._o the_o difference_n of_o scholershipp_n life_n and_o conversation_n betwixt_v the_o planter_n of_o catholic_a religion_n and_o the_o first_o brocher_n of_o heresy_n 121._o the_o difference_n betwixt_v a_o heretic_n and_o a_o schismatic_n 175._o a_o apparent_a difference_n betwixt_v sin_n and_o the_o pain_n of_o sin_n 173._o the_o difficulty_n amongst_o the_o reformer_n to_o call_v any_o kind_n of_o councelle_n 154._o the_o likelihood_n of_o disagreement_n amongst_o they_o ibid._n no_o waraunt_a to_o rely_v upon_o their_o sentence_n suppose_v agreement_n 152._o the_o manner_n of_o discussion_n or_o examination_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n 298._o from_o whence_o desperation_n proceed_v 326._o the_o ruin_n that_o proceed_v of_o dissension_n 212._o dissension_n arguethe_v heretic_n to_o be_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n 219._o the_o deep_a dissimulation_n of_o the_o reformer_n and_o their_o traitorous_a meaning_n to_o christ_n himself_o make_v manifest_a by_o a_o example_n 357._o the_o manifold_a division_n and_o sect_n of_o the_o late_a reformer_n 221._o the_o same_o acknowledge_v by_o many_o of_o they_o 224._o the_o reason_n why_o all_o the_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v 100_o e_o epiphanius_n very_o fit_o comparethe_v heretic_n to_o viper_n of_o diverse_a kind_n 224._o erasmus_n how_o he_o like_v of_o luther_n doctrine_n 246._o diverse_a example_n out_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n for_o prayer_n to_o saint_n 355._o for_o religion_n respect_v to_o relic_n and_o image_n 356._o the_o euchariste_n and_o real_a presence_n prove_v 223._o 703._o the_o denial_n of_o it_o call_v all_o the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n in_o doubt_n ibid._n the_o eutichian_a heresy_n 32_o example_n of_o pride_n &_o self_n love_n in_o heretic_n 66._o the_o excellency_n of_o christ_n preisthood_n above_o all_o other_o and_o how_o it_o differ_v from_o they_o 286._o a_o triple_a exposition_n of_o that_o place_n of_o saint_n john_n exierunt_fw-la ex_fw-la nobis_fw-la apply_v to_o the_o first_o or_o chief_a heretic_n of_o every_o sect_n 156._o who_o be_v say_v to_o be_v send_v by_o extraordinary_a mission_n 8._o why_o the_o fore_n say_v mission_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o miracle_n ibid._n f_o a_o compare_v of_o ancient_a father_n with_o the_o late_a reformer_n and_o new_a bible_n clerk_n 93._o the_o difference_n betwixt_o they_o ibid._n 121._o how_o the_o reformer_n cut_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n by_o refuse_v father_n 94._o the_o force_n of_o religion_n 113._o in_o what_o sense_n faith_n be_v say_v not_o to_o have_v increase_v from_o the_o beginning_n or_o no_o new_a thing_n to_o have_v be_v define_v by_o counsel_n 170._o the_o same_o express_v by_o a_o similitude_n 170._o the_o reason_n why_o faith_n admit_v no_o novelty_n 171._o one_o obstinate_a error_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n deprivethe_v a_o man_n of_o all_o infuse_a faith_n 180._o man_n feticitie_n in_o paradise_n wherein_o it_o consist_v 253._o the_o force_n of_o true_a amity_n and_o friendship_n 339._o how_o disciplinable_a fear_n and_o hope_v make_v man_n in_o everye_o well_o order_v common_a wealth_n 514._o the_o reformer_n take_v they_o both_o away_v 516._o fowre_a kind_n of_o fear_n ibid._n faith_o only_o do_v not_o justify_v 532._o it_o may_v be_v separate_v from_o good_a work_n 530._o luther_n false_a dealing_v in_o this_o point_n as_o appear_v in_o his_o germane_a translation_n 528._o manifest_a proof_n for_o free_a will_n 561._o usq_n ad_fw-la 566._o g_o the_o reason_n that_o we_o may_v suspect_v the_o gospeler_n for_o false_a prophet_n 25._o why_o they_o translate_v elder_n for_o preestes_n 368._o by_o what_o mean_v god_n deliver_v religion_n in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n in_o the_o law_n write_v and_o in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n 105._o he_o will_v not_o sin_n but_o only_o permit_v it_o 452._o good_a before_o bad_a in_o all_o kind_n 165._o proof_n of_o a_o god_n head_n 646._o the_o nature_n of_o goodness_n 229._o proof_n that_o god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n 453._o the_o gospeler_n take_v from_o christ_n the_o title_n of_o a_o eternal_a priest_n 291._o they_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v a_o priest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n 293._o the_o gospell●rs_n especial_o caluin_n blasphemous_o derogate_v from_o christ_n knowledge_n accuse_v he_o of_o ignorance_n in_o many_o thing_n 311._o they_o make_v god_n the_o only_a sinner_n 457._o they_o make_v he_o a_o unreasonable_a prince_n 462._o they_o make_v he_o a_o most_o cruel_a tyrant_n 465_o in_o their_o opinion_n he_o may_v as_o well_o exact_a the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n of_o beast_n as_o of_o man_n 464._o h_o the_o manner_n of_o refute_v heresy_n before_o counsel_n 237._o heretic_n urge_v to_o show_v scripture_n for_o their_o extraordinary_a mission_n 18_o their_o absurd_a answer_v urge_v to_o show_v their_o succession_n 11._o how_o heretic_n may_v be_v term_v parricide_n 8●_n theene_n 3●_n how_o they_o imitate_v aesop_n crow_n 33._o how_o they_o be_v compare_v by_o epiphanius_n to_o viper_n of_o diverse_a ky●des●_n 224._o by_o other_o to_o the_o cadmean_a brother_n 225._o to_o sampsons_n fo●es_n ibid._n to_o wasp_n by_o tertullian_n ibid._n why_o heretic_n covet_v to_o decide_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o scripture_n 35._o many_o evident_a demonstration_n that_o if_o ever_o be_v any_o heretic_n the_o reformer_n be_v also_o heretic_n 184_o usq_n ad_fw-la 186._o the_o reason_n why_o heretic_n seem_v to_o give_v so_o much_o to_o temporal_a prince_n 483._o the_o gross_a absurdity_n of_o heretic_n in_o deny_v all_o kind_n of_o honour_n to_o saint_n 348._o of_o what_o smalle_a virtue_n and_o efficacy_n heretic_n make_v sacrament_n to_o be_v 410._o their_o 2._o reason_n that_o they_o attribute_v so_o little_a force_n to_o they_o refute_v and_o reject_v 413._o their_o erroneous_a and_o impious_a opinion_n of_o the_o form_n of_o word_n use_v in_o sacrament_n 427._o s._n hierome_n recur_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n in_o a_o doubt_n concern_v the_o holy_a trinity_n 143._o hierome_n of_o prague_n beastly_a behaviour_n to_o a_o crucifix_n 347._o s._n hilarius_n his_o counsel_n to_o a_o perplex_a man_n in_o religion_n 226._o three_o kind_n of_o honour_n accord_v to_o three_o kind_n of_o excellency_n 349._o which_o be_v dew_a to_o god_n only_o and_o which_o to_o saint_n ibid._n the_o reason_n why_o we_o give_v a_o religious_a honour_n to_o saint_n body_n image_n and_o relic_n 351._o by_o the_o honour_n give_v to_o saint_n god_n be_v honour_v and_o more_o they_o if_o we_o honour_v he_o alone_o 352._o i_o idleness_n the_o perfection_n of_o a_o christian_a life_n according_a to_o the_o reformer_n 607._o idolatry_n what_o it_o be_v 353._o what_o kind_n of_o imperfection_n christ_n undertake_v in_o our_o nature_n 315._o why_o he_o refuse_v ignorance_n 316._o the_o congruity_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o second_o person_n 255._o the_o inconvenience_n that_o follow_v relyinge_a upon_o bare_a scripture_n or_o the_o naked_a letter_n 40._o the_o great_a inconvenience_n that_o will_v follow_v in_o the_o
church_n for_o defect_n of_o a_o visible_a head_n 151._o 156._o three_o great_a inconvenience_n if_o christ_n shall_v have_v suffer_v the_o pain_n of_o hell_n as_o caluin_n diabolical_o contend_v that_o he_o do_v 337._o the_o institution_n of_o preesthoode_n and_o preest_o function_n 366._o certain_a interpretation_n of_o place_n impious_o allege_v of_o heretic_n to_o prove_v christ_n ignoraut_v 313._o that_o there_o be_v no_o sufficient_a judge_n of_o controversy_n in_o religion_n in_o england_n or_o any_o other_o church_n of_o the_o reformer_n 145._o usq_n ad_fw-la 148._o the_o large_a and_o supreme_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n accord_v to_o the_o which_o they_o have_v alway_v practise_v 142._o impute_v justice_n do_v not_o real_o heal_v the_o soul_n or_o sanctify_v it_o 274._o the_o heretic_n impute_v justice_n admit_v no_o augmentation_n or_o increase_n 305._o it_o makethe_v every_o man_n as_o just_a as_o christ_n himself_o k_o christ_n knowledge_n 309._o adam_n knowledge_n 308._o s_z knowledge_n 308._o l_o how_o agreeable_a labour_n be_v unto_o man_n 603._o the_o succession_n of_o government_n in_o the_o church_n even_o in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n 138._o recourse_n have_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n concern_v all_o difficulty_n in_o religion_n in_o the_o law_n write_v 139._o the_o law_n of_o grace_n require_v a_o visible_a head_n 140_o the_o excellency_n thereof_o alove_o all_o other_o 275._o it_o consist_v in_o believe_v and_o obseruinge_v 276._o to_o say_v that_o the_o law_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v impossible_a give_v occasion_n to_o all_o impie-570_a the_o like_a do_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v free_v we_o from_o all_o law_n 572._o the_o liberty_n that_o luther_n and_o caluin_n give_v all_o faythefull_a man_n to_o sin_n 547._o that_o they_o give_v all_o man_n leave_v to_o sin_n in_o say_v that_o all_o our_o action_n be_v mortal_a sin_n 549._o by_o what_o likelihood_n sentence_n will_v pass_v of_o the_o catholic_a part_n if_o the_o matter_n be_v put_v to_o the_o hear_v of_o any_o indifferent_a person_n 130._o luther_n presumption_n &_o proud_a word_n against_o all_o father_n with_o his_o raylinge_v term_n against_o king_n henry_n 8.24.86_o his_o attempt_n with_o the_o success_n in_o dispossessinge_v of_o a_o devil_n 25._o he_o accusethe_v the_o council_n hold_v at_o jerusalem_n of_o error_n 297._o his_o reproachful_a word_n against_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a 198._o against_o saint_n james_n his_o epistle_n ibid._n his_o little_a flock_n and_o invisible_a church_n disprove_v 202._o he_o despoilethe_v christ_n of_o the_o title_n of_o a_o la_o maker_n 280._o he_o reject_v prayer_n 446._o the_o opposition_n that_o be_v betwixt_v his_o doctrine_n and_o s._n paul_n 623._o betwixt_o he_o and_o our_o saviour_n 635._o luther_n admitterhe_n a_o plurality_n of_o wife_n at_o once_o 624._o his_o four_a case_n wherein_o as_o he_o sayethe_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o man_n to_o leave_v his_o old_a wife_n and_o 〈◊〉_d take_v a_o new_a 625._o his_o notorious_a infamous_a lyse_v 〈◊〉_d death_n 122._o his_o opinion_n of_o sacrament_n 408._o of_o baptism_n wherein_o he_o think_v no_o form_n of_o word_n necessary_a 4.6_o the_o reason_n why_o a_o man_n be_v more_o ashamed_a of_o his_o lust_n then_o other_o vice_n and_o passion_n 61●_n he_o think_v no_o form_n of_o word_n necessary_a 41_o m_n two_o manner_n of_o mission_n concern_v preacher_n 7._o extraordinary_a mission_n require_v the_o extraordinary_a sign_n and_o confirmation_n 20._o two_o way_n christ_n prove_v his_o mission_n 106._o marcious_a heresy_n concern_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n 30._o mark●s_n of_o heretic_n to_o make_v a_o breaehe_fw-ge out_o of_o the_o church_n 159._o novelty_n 166._o a_o particular_a name_n from_o their_o sectmaster_n 172._o a_o renovation_n almost_o of_o all_o old_a heresy_n 179._o want_n of_o succession_n 188._o dissension_n in_o doctrine_n 208._o to_o be_v of_o a_o particulet_n sect_n 228._o to_o be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n by_o the_o cath._n church_n 236._o many_o other_o 241._o all_o with_o in_o their_o several_a place_n above_o note_v be_v severeal_o prove_v to_o agree_v to_o the_o reformer_n of_o this_o tyme._n man_n to_n induce_v man_n to_o religion_n 115._o a_o mean_a to_o distinguishe_v the_o true_a church_n from_o a_o bastard_n and_o heretical_a synagogue_n 191._o the_o manner_n of_o refute_v heresy_n before_o the_o time_n that_o general_a counsel_n can_v be_v call_v 237._o the_o different_a manner_n of_o prayer_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o his_o saint_n 354._o melancthon_n covertlie_o detract_v from_o christ_n 247._o man_n misery_n and_o servitude_n after_o sin_n 254._o caluin_n can_v work_v no_o miracle_n p._n 25._o n_o the_o nature_n of_o goodness_n 229._o the_o nestorian_a heresy_n 32._o the_o general_a and_o ancient_a name_n of_o christian_n and_o catholic_n argue_v the_o true_a catholic_a religion_n 177._o novelty_n a_o mark_n of_o heretic_n 166._o what_o the_o name_n catholic_a import_v 231._o the_o number_n of_o prelate_n present_n at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 240._o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o visible_a head_n over_o the_o church_n here_o in_o earth_n 365._o the_o rail_a speech_n and_o odious_a name_n that_o heretic_n especial_o caluin_n with_o great_a contempt_n use_v against_o all_o saint_n 346._o their_o reproachful_a usage_n of_o relic_n and_o saint_n picture_n 347._o o_o the_o order_n that_o be_v take_v to_o reclaim_v luther_n 240._o the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v against_o his_o obstinacy_n ibid._n his_o heresy_n condemn_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 240._o the_o catholic_a opinion_n of_o justification_n &_o with_o what_o reason_n it_o be_v affirm_v 261._o the_o just_a occasion_n we_o have_v to_o suspect_v the_o reformer_n sincerity_n towards_o christ_n 355._o the_o distinction_n of_o holy_a order_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o givinge_v they_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 367_o the_o ancient_a opinion_n for_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n 399._o the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n amongst_o the_o reformer_n themselves_o for_o the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 408._o their_o erroneous_a opinion_n for_o the_o form_n of_o word_n use_v in_o sacrament_n 427._o the_o epicure_n witless_a opinion_n concern_v the_o origin_n of_o the_o world_n 654._o a_o objection_n of_o our_o voluptuous_a heretic_n against_o chastity_n 619._o the_o same_o answer_v ibid._n the_o object_n of_o religion_n 661._o p_o intolerable_a pride_n in_o heretic_n 73._o 66._o the_o probability_n of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n 102._o saint_n peter_n commission_n and_o preeminence_n above_o the_o rest_n 142._o pelagius_n his_o heresy_n 182._o a_o property_n of_o heretic_n which_o saint_n austin_n obseruethe_v 199._o the_o different_a manner_n of_o prayer_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o his_o saint_n 354._o the_o peace_n and_o agreement_n that_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n 214._o 228._o that_o the_o same_o must_v needs_o proceed_v of_o god_n 218._o the_o superabundant_a price_n of_o our_o redemption_n 156._o christ_n passion_n or_o rather_o propassion_n 327._o the_o change_n of_o preesthood_n with_o the_o change_n of_o the_o la_o 364._o the_o conjunction_n or_o inseparabilitie_n of_o preisthood_n and_o religion_n 363._o 369._o plain_a proof_n both_o by_o scripture_n and_o reason_n for_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n 384._o 389._o predestination_n 420._o the_o excellency_n of_o prayer_n 430._o the_o continual_a practice_n of_o it_o in_o the_o church_n 437._o the_o contempt_n of_o it_o conformable_a to_o the_o reformer_n doctrine_n 438._o prayer_n to_o saint_n 355._o why_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o err_v in_o define_v scripture_n and_o their_o exposition_n 155._o 677._o precept_n of_o good_a life_n reduce_v to_o twoe_n head_n 277._o parricide_n aggre_v to_o heretic_n 81._o r_o the_o truth_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n 105._o the_o reason_n why_o the_o church_n relyethe_v upon_o the_o pope_n sentence_n as_o infallible_a 155._o that_o a_o visible_a head_n in_o the_o church_n be_v necessary_a 144._o the_o reason_n of_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n 288._o why_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n 289._o the_o reason_n that_o we_o may_v suspect_v heretic_n for_o false_a prophet_n 25_o why_o we_o give_v a_o religious_a honour_n to_o saint_n and_o their_o relic_n 341._o why_o we_o make_v intercession_n 353._o the_o liberty_n of_o rebellion_n that_o luther_n and_o caluin_n give_v to_o all_o their_o follower_n 485._o recourse_n have_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n about_o all_o difficulty_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o law_n write_v 139._o the_o certainty_n that_o the_o reformer_n be_v heretic_n 172._o nothing_o can_v excuse_v they_o from_o heresy_n but_o apostasy_n 187._o their_o absurd_a doctrine_n of_o ●us●●●cation_n with_o their_o pernicious_a consequence_n which_o they_o infer_v upon_o the_o same_o 258._o their_o doctrine_n how_o injurious_a it_o be_v to_o christ_n and_o christian_a religion_n 633._o 260._o usq_fw-la ad_fw-la 267._o 318._o to_o all_o civil_a government_n 490._o usq_n ad_fw-la 534._o how_o it_o openethe_v the_o gap_n to_o all_o vice_n and_o sensuality_n 547._o usq_n ad_fw-la 598._o 621._o usq_n ad_fw-la 727._o it_o take_v the_o 579._o away_v all_o speculative_a science_n and_o moral_a virtue_n 550._o all_o conscience_n 594._o it_o direct_o tend_v to_o atheism_n 666._o it_o bringethe_v into_o contempt_n all_o scripture_n and_o religion_n 674._o 689._o usq_fw-la ad_fw-la 696._o the_o proud_a conceit_n that_o the_o reformer_n have_v of_o their_o sanctirie_n 206._o they_o affirm_v that_o all_o our_o action_n good_a and_o bad_a be_v mortal_a sin_n 300._o that_o all_o sin_n be_v equal_a 301._o that_o we_o have_v no_o liberty_n nor_o freewill_n in_o our_o action_n ibid._n that_o god_n be_v the_o autour_fw-fr of_o all_o sin_n 302._o the_o liberty_n of_o rebellion_n that_o luther_n and_o caluin_n give_v to_o all_o their_o follow_v 485._o the_o reformer_n upon_o necessity_n believe_v in_o some_o thing_n the_o pope_n and_o roman_a church_n 679_o they_o take_v away_o in_o effect_n all_o sacrament_n 12._o 16._o example_n out_o of_o scripture_n for_o religious_a respect_n to_o relic_n and_o image_n 356._o s_o the_o custom_n of_o offringe_v sacrifice_n even_o by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o 367._o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o daily_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o new_a law_n for_o the_o uphold_v of_o true_a religion_n 379._o of_o a_o visible_a sacrifice_n hear_v in_o earth_n 360._o of_o a_o proper_a sacrifice_n not_o metaphorical_a 383_o example_n of_o self-love_n and_o pride_n in_o heretic_n 66._o the_o convenience_n or_o rather_o necessity_n of_o corporal_a and_o sensible_a sacrament_n 391._o the_o proof_n of_o they_o severallye_o out_o of_o scripture_n 398._o 402._o the_o reformer_n have_v no_o sacrament_n at_o all_o 416._o the_o only_a service_n of_o our_o heretic_n a_o sermon_n 447._o that_o also_o absurd_a according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n ibid._n the_o difficulty_n of_o understandig_fw-ge scripture_n 49.57_o the_o bare_a letter_n without_o the_o true_a sense_n no_o scripture_n 40._o the_o reason_n thereof_o 45._o how_o the_o scripture_n be_v say_v to_o be_v dependent_a of_o the_o chut-che_a 44._o 676._o argument_n against_o the_o private_a spirit_n 53._o 65._o selffelove_v a_o common_a disease_n to_o all_o heretic_n 65._o thet_z insufficiency_n of_o resolve_v all_o by_o a_o private_a spirit_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n 75._o usq_n 80._o the_o force_n of_o succession_n in_o preisthoode_n 193._o two_o shift_n of_o heretic_n disprove_v touch_v succession_n 196._o the_o lord_n supper_n according_a to_o luther_n can_v not_o be_v eat_v 422._o caluins_n doctrine_n make_v it_o a_o niggardlie_a super._n 424._o t_o tertullian_n complain_v of_o heretic_n in_o his_o time_n 374._o the_o reason_n that_o god_n can_v not_o give_v testimony_n of_o a_o u●●truthe_n by_o miracle_n 106._o proof_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n 700._o v_o valentinus_n his_o heresy_n 30._o the_o lutherane_n ubiquetary_n take_v away_v christ_n divinity_n 248._o the_o commendation_n of_o virginity_n 614._o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o certain_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o impeach_v the_o freedom_n of_o the_o will_n 167._o w_n william_n roding_n foolish_a fiction_n which_o he_o invent_v to_o derogate_v from_o the_o bless_a virgin_n 347._o a_o woman_n complaint_n of_o caluins_n doctrine_n as_o derogate_a to_o their_o sex_n 690._o the_o four_o wound_n which_o we_o receive_v in_o our_o soul_n by_o sin_n 269._o z_o zuinglius_fw-la reject_v father_n 87._o his_o opinion_n of_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n 408._o excuse_v this_o table_n i_o be_v enforce_v to_o commit_v the_o make_n of_o it_o to_o a_o friend_n who_o also_o have_v not_o leisure_n to_o make_v it_o exact_o
herself_o so_o fast_a unto_o you_o that_o the_o death_n of_o your_o person_n can_v not_o dissolve_v this_o marriage_n because_o her_o marriage_n with_o your_o person_n be_v the_o spousage_n with_o your_o noble_a posterity_n these_o great_a favour_n and_o benediction_n of_o the_o almighty_a towards_o your_o majesty_n make_v the_o world_n to_o think_v that_o god_n have_v cull_v you_o out_o for_o some_o good_a purpose_n and_o that_o your_o highness_n to_o show_v yourself_o grateful_a unto_o he_o will_v employ_v yourself_o in_o some_o honourable_a service_n for_o that_o church_n and_o faith_n of_o which_o you_o be_v call_v the_o defendor_n in_o so_o much_o that_o if_o the_o general_a voice_n ground_v only_o on_o the_o great_a expectation_n which_o common_o be_v conceive_v of_o you_o be_v as_o true_a as_o common_a i_o shall_v not_o need_v at_o this_o time_n to_o be_v the_o suppliaunte_n for_o the_o freedom_n and_o liberty_n of_o your_o distress_a catholic_n and_o although_o your_o catholic_a subject_n at_o home_o have_v not_o yet_o obtain_v so_o great_a a_o benefit_n yet_o so_o rich_a hope_n and_o so_o firm_a confidence_n do_v they_o repose_v in_o your_o grace_n bounty_n that_o from_o the_o first_o day_n of_o your_o reign_n they_o hope_v that_o your_o majesty_n will_v prove_v another_o moses_n who_o shall_v deliver_v your_o realm_n and_o kingdom_n from_o a_o worse_o than_o egyptian_a captivity_n i_o mean_v heresy_n which_o make_v the_o understanding_n a_o slave_n to_o error_n under_o a_o show_n of_o verity_n yea_o that_o you_o will_v be_v unto_o they_o another_o losue_n who_o shall_v bring_v they_o to_o their_o land_n of_o promise_n the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v the_o land_n of_o all_o god_n promise_n and_o that_o after_o a_o long_a famine_n more_o than_o jewishe_a or_o saguntine_n not_o of_o body_n but_o of_o soul_n you_o shall_v be_v another_o joseph_n who_o shall_v store_v we_o by_o your_o wisdom_n and_o authority_n with_o the_o spiritual_a provision_n of_o the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n true_a faith_n and_o sacrament_n by_o which_o the_o soul_n be_v nourish_v yea_o that_o you_o will_v be_v another_o constantine_n to_o appease_v the_o boisterous_a storm_n of_o a_o long_a persecution_n and_o to_o repair_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o church_n of_o your_o realm_n of_o england_n scotland_n and_o ireland_n and_o i_o also_o arm_v with_o the_o same_o hope_n and_o bid_v by_o your_o bounty_n and_o constrain_v by_o necessity_n to_o be_v bold_a in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o your_o catholic_a subject_n of_o who_o i_o be_o the_o jest_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o which_o i_o be_o a_o member_n and_o you_o a_o defendor_n in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o catholic_a prince_n yea_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n which_o have_v conceive_v such_o a_o expectarion_n of_o your_o gracious_a goodness_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o great_a king_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n by_o who_o you_o reign_v and_o by_o who_o you_o be_v preserve_v and_o reserve_v for_o this_o crown_n &_o sceptre_n that_o it_o will_v please_v your_o majesty_n to_o cast_v a_o gracious_a regard_n upon_o the_o great_a affliction_n of_o your_o loyal_a natural_a and_o most_o anciente_a subject_n the_o catholic_n of_o your_o realm_n and_o to_o bend_v your_o most_o compationate_a ear_n to_o their_o humble_a &_o suppliaunte_a petition_n who_o desire_v nether_a land_n nor_o livinge_n nor_o office_n nor_o pardon_n for_o offence_n but_o liberty_n for_o their_o consciencee_n who_o restrainte_fw-fr they_o count_v more_o grievous_a than_o imprisonment_n yea_o death_n of_o their_o body_n and_o not_o to_o contristate_v they_o with_o a_o heavy_a repulse_n at_o this_o time_n especial_o when_o even_o thief_n and_o murderer_n be_v pardon_v so_o gracious_o our_o zeal_n towards_o christ_n &_o his_o church_n the_o love_n of_o our_o religion_n the_o desire_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o your_o majesty_n person_n of_o your_o love_a spouse_n our_o most_o gracious_a queen_n of_o your_o royal_a child_n our_o noble_a lord_n of_o your_o kingdom_n also_o our_o dear_a country_n move_v we_o to_o desire_v your_o highness_n to_o restore_v wholly_a tha●_n religion_n which_o your_o glorious_a predecessor_n mainten_v with_o crown_n sceptre_n &_o sword_n as_o for_o the_o defence_n the●_n of_o they_o be_v all_o swear_v at_o their_o sacred_a coronation_n but_o if_o it_o shall_v not_o stand_v with_o your_o grace_n pleasure_n to_o grant_n u●_n so_o much_o we_o most_o humble_o desire_v o●_n our_o knee_n liberty_n only_o of_o our_o conscience_n and_o religion_n which_o the_o nature_n o●_n both_o require_v nether_a as_o we_o hope_v will_v your_o majesty_n condemn_v we_o of_o to_o great_a presumption_n for_o demand_v that_o which_o have_v be_v so_o long_o deny_v we_o because_o there_o be_v no_o prescription_n against_o conscience_n when_o conscience_n be_v enforce_v and_o your_o princely_a prudence_n well_o perceive_v that_o necessity_n on_o our_o part_n be_v importune_v bounty_n on_o your_o part_n imbold●neth_v and_o the_o religion_n on_o your_o most_o noble_a progenitour_n part_n for_o which_o we_o plead_v promise_v a_o gracious_a grant_n for_o if_o it_o much_o skill_v fro●_n what_o tre●_n the_o graft_n or_o fruit_n be_v take_v why_o shall_v it_o not_o much_o import_n to_o come_v of_o a_o catholic_a race_n true_a it_o must_v be_v which_o the_o poet_n say_v fort_n creantur_fw-la fortibus_fw-la &_o bonis_fw-la flac._n hor_n flac._n est_fw-la in_o ●●uencis_fw-la est_fw-la in_o equis_fw-la patrum_fw-la virtus_fw-la nec_fw-la imbecillem_fw-la feroces_fw-la progenerant_fw-la aquilae_fw-la columbam_fw-la i_o grant_v that_o religion_n be_v supernatural_a and_o be_v not_o transfuse_v with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o infuse_v by_o god_n with_o consent_n of_o our_o will_n and_o operation_n of_o grace_n but_o yet_o child_n be_v natural_o bend_v to_o like_v of_o that_o in_o which_o their_o parent_n have_v excel_v and_o true_o for_o zeal_n towards_o the_o catholic_a religion_n almost_o all_o the_o noble_a king_n of_o scotland_n which_o be_v your_o highness_n progenitour_n be_v most_o famous_a as_o the_o valiant_a and_o noble_a malcolmus_n and_o the_o bless_a saint_n marguerite_n his_o spouse_n ●hambre_fw-fr histoire_n abbregée_fw-fr par_fw-fr david_n ●hambre_fw-fr king_n david_n who_o build_v 15._o abbey_n &_o erect_v 4._o bishoprickes_a james_n the_o four_o your_o great_a grandfather_n surname_v protector_n of_o the_o faith_n james_n the_o fifte_n your_o grandfather_n a_o most_o just_a king_n and_o liberal_a to_o the_o poor_a to_o omit_v diverse_a other_o not_o only_o of_o scotland_n but_o also_o of_o england_n yea_o and_o france_n also_o and_o namely_o that_o warlike_a and_o most_o catholic_a house_n of_o guise_n to_o which_o you_o be_v ally_v but_o of_o all_o your_o glorious_a mother_n be_v most_o renowned_a who_o as_o for_o her_o goodly_a personage_n she_o deserve_v to_o b●_n spouse_n to_o a_o king_n of_o france_n and_o for_o he●_n princely_a quality_n and_o royal_a blood_n wa●_n worthy_a a_o double_a crown_n in_o earth_n so_o fo●_n her_o zeal_n in_o religion_n and_o more_o than_o manly_a fortitude_n show_v for_o the_o defence_n o●_n the_o same_o at_o her_o death_n she_o deserve_v the_o three_o crown_n in_o heaven_n call_v aureola_n martyrum_fw-la be_v it_o possible_a then_o tha●_n your_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n behold_v such_o rare_a virtue_n in_o your_o mother_n shall_v not_o desire_v it_o in_o yourself_o or_o tha●_n you_o shall_v not_o love_v to_o live_v in_o that_o religion_n for_o which_o she_o love_v to_o die_v i_o have_v hard_a of_o some_o that_o be_v belong_v to_o she_o and_o entertain_v by_o she_o when_o she_o be_v rather_o detain_v then_o entertain_v in_o england_n that_o she_o spend_v many_o howen_v in_o prayer_n shed_v many_o tear_n of_o sorrow_v give_v great_a alm_n of_o charity_n and_o use_v diverse_a mean_n of_o providence_n that_o your_o majesty_n may_v be_v make_v a_o catholic_a and_o amongst_o other_o she_o devise_v the_o mean_n that_o you_o shall_v be_v baptize_v sixth_o nicol_n burn_v in_o his_o preface_n to_o king_n lame_v the_o sixth_o and_o confirm_v by_o a_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o run_v still_o in_o her_o mind_n that_o be_v deep_a i●_n her_o heart_n and_o often_o in_o she_o mouth_n fo●_n that_o she_o fetch_v many_o a_o sigh_n and_o sighe●_n out_o many_o a_o wish_n and_o as_o live_n for_o thi●_n she_o shed_v many_o tear_n so_o die_v no_o doubt_n she_o offer_v no_o little_a part_n of_o her_o innocent_a blood_n which_o as_o it_o cry_v vengeance_n before_o god_n against_o her_o enemy_n so_o like_o a_o please_a sacrifice_n as_o we_o hope_v it_o cry_v for_o conversion_n of_o your_o majesty_n and_o your_o kingdom_n to_o that_o religion_n for_o which_o it_o be_v shed_v so_o that_o as_o saint_n ambrose_n say_v once_o to_o saint_n monica_n who_o be_v alway_n pray_v weep_a
catholic_a subject_n both_o at_o home_n an●_n abroad_o who_o will_v present_v themselves_o a●_n such_o a_o disputation_n if_o you_o shall_v but_o please_v to_o command_v last_o suppose_v your_o highness_n shall_v persecute_v the_o catholic_a religion_n as_o god_n forbid_v so_o glorious_a prince_n shall_v receve_v so_o foul_a a_o disgrace_n beside_o the_o dishonour_n where_o wi●●_n your_o noble_a crown_n and_o name_n shoul●_n be_v obscure_v beside_o that_o you_o can_v not_o persecute_v this_o religion_n but_o you_o must_v mak●_n war_n against_o your_o noble_a progenitor_n even_o your_o glorious_a mother_n you_o shou●_n soon_o make_v a_o conquest_n of_o all_o the_o cou●_n try_v about_o you_o then_o extirpate_v this_o re●gion_n who_o nature_n be_v to_o gather_v great_a force_n when_o great_a fury_n be_v arm_v against_o it_o this_o palmtree_n o_o mighty_a prince_n the_o more_o it_o be_v press_v the_o high_a it_o grow_v this_o camomile_n the_o more_o it_o be_v tread_v the_o thick_a it_o grow_v this_o wallnuttree_n the_o more_o it_o be_v beat_v the_o more_o fruitful_a it_o wax_v this_o corn_n by_o tresh_v be_v sever_v from_o the_o chaff_n this_o gold_n by_o a_o fiery_a persecution_n become_v pure_a and_o bright_a this_o ark_n by_o a_o rage_a deluge_n mountethe_v the_o high_a kill_v of_o catholic_n most_o clement_a prince_n be_v but_o cut_v of_o bough_n from_o that_o tree_n which_o reach_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o this_o cut_n be_v but_o lop_n the_o tree_n afterward_o in_o height_n be_v tall_a and_o in_o bough_n full_a and_o this_o spill_n of_o catholic_n blood_n be_v but_o water_v of_o christ_n vinyarde_n in_o which_o for_o one_o catholic_a cut_v of_o many_o a_o hundred_o spring_v up_o in_o the_o place_n those_o nero_n domitian_n diocletian_o and_o maximian_o can_v bear_v witness_n of_o this_o of_o which_o the_o last_o twoe_n have_v gather_v great_a force_n and_o provide_v all_o the_o engine_n and_o instrument_n of_o cruelty_n that_o a_o cruel_a heart_n can_v devise_v make_v full_o account_v of_o a_o conquest_n of_o the_o christian_a race_n and_o engrave_v this_o their_o presume_a victory_n in_o marble_n pillar_n in_o spain_n with_o this_o inscription_n diocles_n jovius_fw-la maximin_n hercules_n caess_a aug._n amplificato_fw-la per_fw-la orientem_fw-la &_o occidentem_fw-la imperi●_n rom._n 204_o eus_n l._n ●_o c._n 13.25_o 6_o 29._o zon_n 3._o par_fw-fr annal._n sur._n 10.6_o die_v to_o decemb._n aidus_n man_n post_n schol_n in_o comm_n caes_n bar_n ann_n 204_o &_o nomine_fw-la christianorum_fw-la deleto_fw-it qui_fw-fr remp._n evertebant_fw-la but_o they_o count_v their_o chicken_n before_o they_o be_v hatch_v triumph_v before_o the_o victory_n give_v a_o blaze_n before_o their_o light_n go_v out_o and_o exalt_v their_o heart_n before_o their_o ruin_n deprive_v themselves_o of_o their_o empire_n for_o the_o disgrace_n which_o they_o conceive_v in_o such_o a_o foil_n and_o die_v a_o death_n so_o miserable_a that_o it_o seem_v the_o beginning_n of_o their_o hell_n and_o those_o your_o predecessor_n who_o have_v persecute_v the_o little_a flock_n of_o the_o catholic_n of_o your_o realm_n of_o england_n will_v assure_v your_o grace_n if_o they_o be_v live_v that_o this_o little_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n follow_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o wholle●_n because_o notwithstanding_o so_o many_o confiscation_n of_o their_o good_n so_o many_o confininge_n &_o imprisonmente_n and_o banishmente_n of_o their_o parson_n so_o many_o torture_n and_o death_n of_o their_o body_n catholic_n and_o catholic_a preeste_n be_v more_o at_o this_o present_a in_o your_o realm_n than_o they_o be_v forty_o year_n since_o it_o must_v be_v true_a w_z ch_o saint_n leo_n avouch_v non_fw-la minuitur_fw-la persecutionibus_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la apost_n ser_n in_o nat_n apost_n sed_fw-la augetur_fw-la &_o semper_fw-la dominicus_n agre_z segete_fw-la ditiori_fw-la vestitur_fw-la dum_fw-la grant_n quae_fw-la singula_fw-la cadunt_fw-la multiplicata_fw-la nascuntur_fw-la the_o church_n by_o persecution_n be_v not_o diminish_v but_o augment_v and_o always_o our_o lord_n field_n be_v clad_v with_o a_o rich_a harvest_n while_o the_o grain_n which_o fall_n spring_v forth_o again_o more_o multiply_v and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o that_o must_v be_v perform_v which_o christ_n promise_v 16._o mat._n 16._o portae_n inferi_fw-la non_fw-la praevalebunt_fw-la adversus_fw-la illam_fw-la the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o her_o enemy_n be_v dead_a rot_a and_o forget_v she_o stand_v sure_a upon_o a_o rock_n always_o the_o more_o glorious_a the_o more_o she_o be_v assault_v but_o i_o crave_v pardon_n mosthumble_o of_o your_o gracious_a clemency_n for_o my_o tedious_a petition_n the_o misery_n of_o our_o state_n and_o the_o importance_n of_o our_o humble_a supplication_n require_v a_o long_a but_o your_o rare_a clemency_n and_o humanity_n which_o have_v already_o win_v you_o the_o heart_n of_o your_o people_n demand_v a_o short_a wherefore_o i_o shall_v desire_v your_o highness_n only_o to_o imagine_v that_o in_o this_o petition_n your_o catholic_a subject_n be_v not_o alone_o your_o noble_a progenitour_n and_o predecessor_n your_o most_o glorious_a mother_n all_o the_o catholic_a prince_n to_o whon_v you_o be_v ally_v and_o their_o catholic_a country_n which_o border_n upon_o you_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n the_o saint_n of_o your_o realm_n the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n shed_v in_o the_o same_o &_o for_o the_o same_o the_o misery_n of_o your_o most_o ancient_a subject_n your_o highness_n honour_n &_o security_n both_o for_o the_o temporal_a &_o spiritual_a state_n of_o your_o kingdom_n demand_v this_o also_o with_o us._n yea_o this_o your_o own_o self_n so_o gracious_a a_o lord_n towards_o all_o require_v of_o yourself_o wherefore_o use_v no_o other_o intercessor_n they_o yourself_o we_o desire_v your_o grace_n to_o harken_v to_o yourself_o which_o if_o it_o shall_v please_v you_o to_o do_v we_o make_v no_o doubt_n of_o our_o most_o humble_a petition_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o shall_v pray_v to_o he_o who_o have_v the_o heart_n of_o king_n in_o his_o hand_n 21._o prou._n 21._o to_o bend_v your_o compassionate_a heart_n towards_o your_o catholic_a subject_n and_o so_o to_o rule_v it_o and_o inspire_v it_o that_o you_o may_v be_v a_o king_n according_a to_o his_o heart_n that_o you_o under_o he_o may_v rain_v long_o and_o prosperous_o in_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n and_o he_o by_o you_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o that_o so_o you_o may_v reign_v under_o he_o here_o for_o a_o time_n as_o you_o may_v reign_v with_o he_o hereafter_o for_o all_o eternity_n your_o highness_n most_o humble_a and_o obedient_a subject_n matthew_n kellison_n to_o the_o christian_a reader_n the_o inanimate_a and_o unreasonable_a creature_n gentle_a reader_n because_o they_o have_v nether_a sufficient_a knowledge_n to_o direct_v themselves_o to_o their_o end_n nether_a will_n to_o move_v themselves_o unto_o it_o be_v by_o the_o proudident_a governor_n and_o menager_n of_o all_o endue_v with_o natural_a inclination_n propension_n or_o instincte_n by_o which_o they_o be_v carry_v every_o one_o direct_o to_o their_o end_n as_o though_o they_o know_v it_o and_o desire_v it_o for_o as_o the_o arrow_v though_o it_o know_v not_o the_o mark_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v direct_v by_o one_o that_o know_v it_o fly_v as_o direct_o to_o it_o as_o if_o it_o know_v it_o and_o as_o swifte_o as_o if_o it_o be_v in_o love_n with_o it_o so_o these_o creature_n although_o they_o know_v not_o their_o end_n yet_o because_o they_o be_v direct_v by_o natural_a propension_n &_o instincte_n which_o god_n whowell_fw-mi know_v it_o have_v put_v into_o they_o aim_n alway_v at_o their_o convenient_a place_n end_n and_o perfection_n as_o if_o they_o not_o only_o know_v they_o but_o also_o most_o earnest_o desire_v they_o the_o heaven_n as_o we_o see_v do_v move_v so_o uniform_o as_o though_o by_o common_a consent_n they_o be_v aggreeed_o to_o be_v the_o never_o err_a dialle_n which_o measure_n our_o action_n and_o distinguishe_v our_o time_n and_o season_n the_o sun_n rise_v at_o a_o just_a time_n as_o if_o he_o be_v man_n cock_n to_o call_v he_o up_o to_o his_o work_n and_o his_o candle_n also_o to_o give_v he_o light_v by_o which_o he_o may_v see_v to_o work_v and_o he_o set_v also_o at_o his_o time_n put_v man_n in_o mind_n that_o then_o it_o be_v time_n for_o he_o to_o take_v his_o rest_n and_o to_o cease_v from_o labour_n the_o moon_n in_o her_o change_n be_v unchaungeable_a and_o constante_n in_o her_o inconstancy_n and_o both_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n be_v so_o sure_a moderatour_n of_o time_n and_o season_n that_o winter_n and_o summer_n spring_n and_o the_o fall_v of_o the_o leaf_n never_o change_v their_o order_n not_o that_o these_o planet_n know_v their_o time_n but_o because_o they_o be_v move_v
do_v we_o not_o apprehend_v in_o they_o good_a that_o be_v pleasure_n or_o profit_n so_o that_o the_o banger_n of_o our_o will_n proceed_v only_o from_o mistake_v of_o bad_a for_o good_a and_o the_o error_n of_o our_o understanding_n proceed_v not_o from_o any_o prone_n which_o we_o have_v to_o untruth_n but_o from_o mistake_v of_o apparaunte_n for_o true_a verity_n and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n most_o gentle_a reader_n why_o i_o have_v make_v so_o exact_v a_o survey_v of_o the_o new_a religion_n because_o i_o know_v thy_o understanding_n to_o be_v so_o natural_o incline_v to_o truth_n and_o so_o avert_v from_o all_o untruth_n and_o error_n that_o to_o lay_v open_a unto_o thy_o view_n the_o manifold_a and_o gross_a absurdity_n which_o it_o impli_v be_v to_o refute_v they_o and_o to_o make_v they_o know_v unto_o thou_o be_v to_o dissuade_v thou_o from_o they_o for_o true_o i_o find_v many_o point_n of_o this_o religion_n so_o opposite_a to_o light_v of_o reason_n that_o i_o dare_v anouch_n that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v either_o lutherane_n or_o caluiniste_n unless_o he_o want_n wit_n or_o have_v wit_n enter_v not_o into_o consideration_n or_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o passion_n or_o partial_a affection_n i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o many_o a_o good_a wit_n may_v be_v find_v amongst_o the_o professor_n of_o this_o religion_n but_o yet_o i_o say_v that_o these_o good_a wit_n if_o they_o lay_v a_o side_n passion_n and_o partiality_n &_o will_v vouchsafe_v also_o to_o enter_v into_o due_a consideratoon_n can_v be_v nether_a lutheran_n nor_o caluiniste_n because_o to_o evident_a untruth_n the_o understanding_n can_v give_v no_o assent_n nor_o approbation_n and_o what_o more_o evident_a untruthe_n than_o lutheranisme_n or_o caluinisme_n first_o of_o all_o their_o preacher_n can_v say_v no_o more_o for_o proof_n of_o their_o authority_n or_o doctrine_n than_o simon_n magus_n ebion_n cerinthus_n basilides_n nestorius_n eutiches_n arius_n wicleph_n or_o any_o other_o heretic_n can_v have_v say_v and_o enerie_n false_a prophet_n hereafter_o may_v say_v preach_v he_o never_o so_o absurde_o as_o i_o have_v demonstrate_v in_o my_o first_o book_n most_o evident_o for_o nether_a can_v they_o prove_v their_o mission_n to_o be_v ordinary_a by_o succession_n nor_o extraordinary_a by_o miracle_n and_o so_o if_o you_o give_v ear_n to_o they_o you_o must_v bind_v yourself_o to_o harken_v to_o all_o false_a prophet_n wh●_n will_v say_v and_o swear_v that_o they_o be_v send_v from_o christ_n and_o if_o you_o put_v they_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o their_o mission_n they_o will_v say_v you_o be_v partial_a who_o reject_v they_o and_o yet_o receive_v luther_n and_o calum_fw-la wh●_n can_v not_o prove_v their_o mission_n but_o no_o man_n can_v with_o any_o show_v of_o reason_n admit_v all_o false_a prophet_n because_o some_o of_o they_o teach_v contrary_n ergo_fw-la he_o can_v not_o have_v reason_n to_o receve_v luther_n and_o caluin_n as_o the_o true_a messenger_n and_o minister_n of_o christ_n and_o consequent_o he_o can_v not_o in_o heart_n receve_v they_o because_o the_o understanding_n can_v not_o approve_v a_o thing_n for_o which_o she_o have_v no_o probable_a reason_n second_o their_o doctrine_n if_o it_o be_v well_o consider_v be_v as_o evident_o false_a as_o that_o virtue_n be_v vice_n or_o black_a be_v white_a but_o the_o understanding_n as_o be_v already_o prove_v can_v not_o approve_v manifest_a falsehood_n and_o evident_a untruth_n ergo_fw-la no_o man_n of_o understanding_n and_o consideration_n can_v admit_v luther_n and_o caluins_n doctrine_n now_o that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v evident_o false_a i_o can_v not_o only_o evident_o but_o also_o easy_o prove_v for_o to_o a_o christian_a it_o be_v evident_a suppose_v the_o verity_n of_o scripture_n that_o heresy_n be_v error_n and_o falsehood_n but_o in_o my_o second_o book_n i_o have_v demonstrate_v that_o all_o the_o mark_n of_o heresy_n aggree_v as_o fit_o to_o this_o new_a doctrine_n as_o to_o arianisman_n any_o old_a heresy_n ergô_o to_o a_o christian_a it_o be_v evident_a that_o this_o new_a doctrine_n be_v error_n and_o consequentby_o it_o can_v not_o be_v approve_v by_o a_o christian_a of_o judgement_n and_o consideration_n because_o the_o understanding_n can_v not_o give_v asseni_fw-la to_o a_o open_a untruth_n it_o be_v evident_a also_o to_o a_o christian_n that_o antichristian_a doctrine_n which_o be_v dishonourable_a and_o repugnaunt_a to_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v true_a but_o lutheranisme_n and_o caluinisme_n be_v altogether_o opposite_a to_o christ_n because_o it_o pull_v at_o his_o divinity_n and_o make_v he_o nether_a redeemer_n nor_o spiritual_a physician_n nor_o la_o maker_n nor_o eternal_a priest_n according_a to_o melchisedechs_n order_n nor_o judge_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a but_o rather_o aequali_fw-la ze_v every_o christian_n to_o he_o in_o grace_n and_o sanctity_n and_o make_v he_o ignorant_a feign_v he_o also_o to_o have_v despair_v at_o length_n bring_v he_o to_o hell_n and_o damnation_n and_o hate_v all_o ●inges_n which_o have_v be_v belove_v of_o he_o or_o belong_v to_o he_o all_o which_o the_o three_o book_n convince_v ergô_o a_o christian_a of_o wit_n and_o consideration_n can_v not_o in_o heart_n brook_v such_o a_o religion_n in_o like_a manner_n to_o a_o christian_a yea_o to_o every_o man_n that_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o religion_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o religion_n can_v not_o stand_v without_o preestes_n sacrifice_n sacrament_n &_o prayer_n but_o it_o be_v evident_a also_o that_o in_o the_o new_a religion_n none_o of_o these_o essential_a part_n of_o religion_n can_v be_v find_v especial_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o same_o religion_n as_o my_o four_o book_n make_v manifest_a ergô_o a_o christian_a of_o wit_n and_o dew_a consideration_n can_v not_o aepprove_v it_o for_o true_a religion_n likewise_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o reason_n that_o all_o lawful_a authority_n be_v of_o god_n that_o prince_n law_n bind_v that_o their_o tribunal_n be_v just_a and_o lawful_a and_o that_o correspondence_n betwixt_v the_o prince_n and_o subject_n and_o betwixt_v one_o subject_a and_o another_o be_v necessary_a to_o uphold_v society_n to_o which_o god_n and_o nature_n incline_v we_o all_o which_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o five_o book_n but_o the_o reform_a doctrine_n despoil_v prince_n of_o authority_n bring_v their_o law_n and_o tribunal_n in_o contempt_n and_o ruine_v all_o society_n at_o be_v evident_o also_o prove_v in_o the_o same_o book_n ergo_fw-la a_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n and_o judgement_n who_o enter_v also_o into_o a_o dew_a consideration_n can_v not_o with_o heart_n admit_v of_o this_o religion_n lastelie_o as_o evident_a it_o be_v that_o this_o new_a religion_n be_v absurd_a as_o that_o god_n be_v not_o the_o autour_fw-fr of_o sin_n and_o the_o only_a sinner_n that_o he_o be_v not_o unreasonable_a cruel_a or_o tyrannical_a but_o according_a to_o the_o reform_a doctrine_n all_o these_o blasphemy_n be_v verify_v of_o god_n as_o my_o sixth_o book_n teach_v ergo_fw-la the_o reform_a doctrine_n be_v evident_o absurd_a vice_n also_o and_o atheism_n by_o light_n of_o reason_n be_v evident_o know_v to_o be_v repugnaunt_a to_o reason_n wherefore_o see_v that_o this_o new_a religion_n leadethe_v to_o all_o vice_n and_o atheism_n and_o that_o by_o many_o point_n and_o principle_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o same_o as_o be_v in_o my_o seven_o and_o eight_o book_n demonstrate_v it_o be_v a_o evident_a absurdity_n evident_o repugnaunt_a to_o reason_n and_o consequent_o can_v not_o be_v approve_v by_o a_o man_n of_o reason_n and_o consideration_n because_o the_o understanding_n can_v no_o more_o assent_n unto_o ●n_o evident_a untruth_n then_o can_v the_o will_n affect_v and_o like_v of_o evil_a as_o evil_a as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v wherefore_o most_o gentle_a reader_n if_o thou_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o vouchsaffe_n to_o peruse_v my_o book_n i_o hope_v thou_o shall_v be_v more_o confirm_v if_o thou_o be_v a_o follower_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o late_a and_o new_a religion_n when_o thou_o see_v the_o foul_a absurdity_n of_o thy_o own_o religion_n and_o the_o plausible_a verity_n of_o the_o catholic_a i_o hope_v thou_o will_v reject_v the_o one_o &_o embrace_v the_o other_o because_o my_o book_n will_v make_v manifest_a unto_o thou_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o at_o least_o as_o this_o i_o intend_v so_o this_o i_o have_v endeavour_v and_o if_o my_o intend_a purpose_n be_v well_o bring_v to_o pass_v god_n be_v the_o principal_a agent_n i_o only_o his_o unwieldy_a instrument_n and_o so_o he_o only_o be_v to_o be_v praise_v if_o ill_a i_o be_v the_o fault_n yet_o such_o as_o i_o hope_v shall_v be_v excuse_v because_o it_o be_v not_o voluntary_a if_o thou_o reap_v commodity_n by_o my_o labour_n i_o count_v
rather_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o heretic_n which_o be_v aggreeable_a to_o no_o common_a but_o only_o to_o a_o private_a spirit_n especial_o see_v that_o we_o have_v such_o warrant_a for_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o father_n but_o none_o at_o all_o for_o the_o private_a spirit_n of_o every_o private_a man_n now_o let_v we_o see_v in_o a_o word_n how_o by_o reject_v this_o infallible_a authority_n of_o father_n they_o leave_v no_o certain_a rule_n for_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n and_o so_o open_a the_o gap_n to_o all_o heretic_n and_o heresy_n for_o lay_v away_o father_n which_o be_v in_o all_o age_n count_v the_o only_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n be_v nothing_o worth_a for_o they_o consist_v of_o father_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o as_o little_a esteem_n because_o she_o all_o way_n believe_v as_o her_o pastor_n do_v yea_o she_o can_v not_o tell_v what_o to_o believe_v but_o by_o their_o instruction_n scripture_n therefore_o be_v only_o leave_v and_o the_o private_a spirit_n &_o see_v those_o twoe_n bare_a authority_n as_o before_o be_v prove_v open_v the_o gap_n to_o all_o heresy_n the_o denial_n of_o the_o father_n authority_n must_v needs_o do_v the_o same_o for_o suppose_v a_o new_a heretic_n yea_o a_o devil_n from_o hell_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o man_n shall_v preach_v a_o new_a heresy_n contrary_a to_o all_o the_o heresy_n that_o ever_o where_o may_v he_o not_o allege_v scripture_n for_o it_o expound_v it_o as_o he_o please_v and_o if_o you_o demand_v of_o he_o how_o he_o know_v that_o he_o expound_v it_o aright_o may_v he_o not_o say_v that_o his_o spirit_n tell_v he_o so_o and_o if_o you_o allege_v that_o all_o that_o ever_o teach_v before_o he_o be_v of_o another_o opinion_n and_o give_v another_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n may_v he_o not_o say_v as_o casilie_o as_o luther_n and_o caluin_n do_v that_o they_o be_v man_n &_o err_v all_o the_o pack_n of_o they_o and_o so_o if_o authority_n of_o father_n be_v reject_v he_o or_o any_o other_o may_v say_v what_o he_o will_v and_o no_o man_n can_v control_v he_o wherefore_o to_o conclude_v if_o we_o give_v ear_n unto_o the_o ghospeller_n of_o this_o time_n who_o have_v reject_v the_o authority_n of_o father_n &_o will_v consequent_o judge_v all_o by_o scripture_n sense_v by_o the_o private_a spirit_n we_o must_v harken_v to_o all_o heretic_n and_o open_v the_o gap_n yea_o the_o door_n to_o all_o false_a apostle_n who_n can_v not_o without_o manifest_a partiality_n be_v exclude_v and_o repel_v if_o these_o man_n be_v admit_v the_o fifte_a chapter_n show_v that_o they_o have_v no_o probable_a mean_n to_o induce_v a_o reasonable_a man_n unto_o their_o religion_n and_o that_o therefore_o if_o we_o give_v credit_n unto_o they_o we_o must_v give_v credit_n to_o all_o heretic_n preach_v they_o never_o so_o absurd_a &_o fantastical_a paradox_n it_o be_v a_o common_a opinion_n amongst_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o divine_v that_o our_o faith_fw-mi the_o be_v supernatural_a can_v not_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o reason_n as_o opinion_n of_o philosopher_n may_v be_v because_o it_o aim_v at_o thing_n a_o above_o reason_n philosophy_n soar_v no_o high_a than_o reason_n give_v she_o leave_v and_o so_o in_o christian_a religion_n we_o ought_v more_o to_o rely_v on_o faith_n and_o authority_n than_o reason_n and_o we_o can_v not_o show_v ourselves_o more_o reasonable_a then_o to_o leave_v of_o reason_v in_o thing_n above_o reason_n but_o all_o though_o it_o be_v so_o that_o we_o can_v not_o prove_v our_o religion_n by_o reason_n yet_o we_o may_v set_v it_o forth_o with_o such_o testimony_n of_o miracle_n antiquity_n common_a consent_n and_o such_o like_a motive_n as_o shall_v convince_v a_o man_n of_o reason_n that_o this_o religion_n involu_v no_o evident_a absurdity_n against_o reason_n but_o rather_o be_v very_o probable_a and_o most_o credible_o to_o be_v belceve_v 〈◊〉_d 2.2_o 〈…〉_o be_v 〈◊〉_d for_o although_o as_o saint_n thomas_n say_v our_o religion_n be_v not_o evidente_o true_a yet_o be_v it_o euídenter_fw-la credibilis_fw-la evident_o credible_a because_o though_o in_o itself_o it_o be_v obscure_a yet_o have_v it_o be_v so_o credible_o deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o credible_a sign_n and_o token_n that_o no_o man_n can_v with_o reason_n think_v it_o otherwise_o then_o very_o credible_a if_o he_o well_o consider_v what_o testimony_n may_v be_v allege_v for_o it_o which_o as_o david_n say_v be_v credibilia_fw-la nimis_fw-la 〈◊〉_d psal_n 〈◊〉_d ●o_o to_o credible_a that_o be_v so_o credible_a as_o we_o can_v not_o with_o reason_n desire_v great_a testimony_n for_o thing_n above_o reason_n in_o the_o beginning_n god_n cathechise_v man_n in_o this_o religion_n by_o angel_n who_o he_o send_v and_o by_o patriarch_n &_o prophet_n who_o he_o inspire_v by_o who_o he_o teach_v the_o people_n what_o sacrament_n to_o use_v what_o sacrifice_n to_o offer_v and_o other_o point_n of_o religion_n such_o as_o then_o man_n be_v capable_a of_o in_o the_o la_o write_v he_o deliver_v his_o will_n and_o meaning_n concern_v la_o and_o religion_n and_o the_o ceremony_n and_o sacrament_n belong_v there_o unto_o by_o his_o servant_n moses_n 〈◊〉_d ●u●d_n 〈◊〉_d to_o who_o he_o appear_v by_o a_o angel_n in_o thunder_a and_o other_o such_o sign_n and_o by_o who_o he_o wrougth_n in_o egypt_n and_o in_o the_o desert_n so_o many_o miracle_n for_o proof_n and_o confirmation_n of_o this_o religion_n after_o ward_n in_o the_o la_o of_o grace_n and_o fullnes_n of_o time_n and_o time_n of_o spiritual_a plenty_n and_o riches_n as_o in_o more_o ample_a manner_n so_o with_o great_a testimony_n and_o sign_n this_o faith_n be_v deliver_v unto_o us._n for_o first_o our_o saviour_n prove_v his_o mission_n by_o all_o the_o ancient_a prophet_n who_o have_v fortolde_v his_o come_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o come_n his_o office_n the_o place_n and_o circunstance_n of_o his_o nativity_n life_n and_o death_n which_o all_o aggre_a to_o he_o conclude_v he_o to_o be_v the_o messiah_n second_o by_o infinite_a miracle_n he_o prove_v his_o authority_n &_o doctrine_n in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o say_v ●_o 〈◊〉_d 10._o ●_o that_o the_o work_n which_o he_o do_v give_v testimony_n of_o he_o yea_o the_o jew_v confess_v that_o he_o can_v not_o have_v do_v so_o strange_a thing_n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v of_o god_n and_o see_v that_o he_o wrought_v these_o miracle_n to_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o messiah_n &_o his_o doctrine_n to_o be_v of_o god_n it_o can_v not_o be_v otherwise_o because_o as_o god_n can_v not_o deceve_v being_n prima_fw-la verita●_fw-la the_o first_o verity_n nor_o be_v deceive_v be_v wisdom_n itself_o so_o can_v he_o not_o give_v testimony_n of_o a_o untruth_n by_o miracle_n for_o so_o shall_v he_o be_v both_o a_o liar_n &_o a_o deceiver_n 2._o act._n 2._o the_o apostle_n in_o like_a manner_n after_o that_o in_o pentecost_n they_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o a_o visible_a form_n and_o manner_n receive_v power_n also_o to_o give_v this_o holy_a spirit_n visible_o to_o other_o and_o to_o work_v miracle_n also_o to_o prove_v their_o mission_n and_o doctrine_n vi●_n mar._n vi●_n in_o so_o much_o that_o saint_n mark_n say_v that_o they_o preach_v and_o god_n confirm_v their_o doctrine_n by_o miracle_n and_o sign_n that_o follow_v wherefore_o although_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o preach_v be_v out_o of_o reason_n ken_n yet_o it_o be_v make_v evident_a by_o testimony_n and_o so_o be_v evident_o credible_a because_o if_o god_n can_v not_o give_v testimony_n to_o a_o untruth_n then_o in_o that_o he_o give_v testimony_n by_o miracle_n of_o their_o doctrine_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v of_o god_n second_o the_o strange_a conquest_n which_o the_o apostle_n make_v of_o idolatry_n in_o despite_n of_o all_o the_o philosopher_n and_o tyrant_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o miraculouse_a plant_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v a_o argument_n to_o prove_v our_o religion_n to_o be_v of_o god_n most_o pregnant_a &_o a_o motive_n to_o persuade_v any_o reasonable_a man_n most_o forcible_a for_o as_o once_o the_o israelite_n by_o make_v a_o procession_n about_o the_o wall_n of_o hierico_n ●_z josus●_n ●_z and_o sound_v of_o their_o trompete_n a_o unlikely_a stratagem_n to_o surprise_v such_o a_o city_n dismantle_v the_o town_n &_o level_v the_o wall_n with_o the_o ground_n so_o christ_n jesus_n by_o the_o circuit_n of_o a_o few_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n about_o the_o world_n and_o by_o the_o blast_n of_o their_o mouth_n which_o be_v the_o golden_a trompete_n which_o promulgate_v the_o new_a law_n ransake_v the_o city_n of_o idolatry_n which_o then_o be_v as_o great_a all_o most_o as_o the_o world_n make_v the_o
way_n which_o lead_v to_o perdition_n unto_o the_o straight_o and_o narrow_a way_n which_o tend_v to_o salvation_n thou_o can_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o man_n unlearned_a and_o impotent_a have_v do_v this_o who_o thou_o can_v suspect_v nether_a to_o have_v use_v deceit_n nor_o compulsion_n thou_o can_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o many_o emperor_n have_v resist_v these_o man_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v get_v the_o victory_n let_v then_o this_o religion_n be_v never_o so_o repugnaunte_a to_o sense_n never_o so_o high_a above_o reason_n i_o believe_v it_o be_v of_o god_n i_o believe_v it_o be_v true_a else_o by_o such_o man_n and_o after_o such_o a_o manner_n it_o can_v never_o have_v be_v persuade_v vi●t_fw-la hugo_n de_fw-fr 8._o vi●t_fw-la yea_o i_o will_v bold_o say_v with_o a_o certain_a lerued_a man_n si_fw-mi error_n est_fw-la domine_fw-la à_fw-la te_fw-la decepti_fw-la sumus_fw-la if_o this_o which_o we_o believe_v be_v a_o error_n thou_o o_o lord_n have_v deceive_v we_o but_o thou_o can_v neither_o deceve_v nor_o be_v deceve_v therefore_o we_o be_v assure_v of_o our_o religion_n god_n therefore_o who_o have_v always_o deliver_v faith_n unto_o we_o so_o credible_o and_o induce_v we_o unto_o it_o so_o swet_o by_o probable_a mean_n yea_o by_o evident_a sign_n and_o testimony_n if_o he_o have_v permit_v this_o faith_n to_o decay_v or_o to_o lie_v hide_v for_o many_o hundred_o year_n or_o if_o corruption_n and_o error_n in_o religion_n have_v for_o long_a time_n be_v take_v for_o sincere_a religion_n than_o no_o doubt_n by_o they_o by_o who_o he_o restore_v this_o religion_n again_o and_o deliver_v it_o in_o the_o former_a perfection_n by_o who_o he_o reform_v these_o error_n which_o have_v go_v for_o truth_n he_o will_v give_v we_o probable_a &_o credible_a mean_n by_o which_o like_o reasonable_a man_n we_o may_v be_v induce_v unto_o this_o reformation_n for_o if_o we_o have_v many_o hundred_o year_n by_o our_o for_o father_n be_v teach_v that_o there_o be_v seven_o sacrament_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o alt●r_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o contain_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n real_o that_o there_o be_v purgatory_n that_o we_o have_v free_a will_n that_o good_a work_n be_v necessary_a that_o our_o evil_a work_n be_v no_o work_n of_o god_n that_o prayer_n to_o saint_n and_o reverence_n do_v to_o they_o and_o their_o image_n be_v not_o superstition_n they_o no_o doubt_n if_o god_n will_v have_v we_o to_o leave_v of_o these_o old_a opinion_n and_o to_o embrace_v new_a he_o will_v in_o so_o importaunt_a a_o matter_n as_o this_o be_v which_o touch_v salvation_n and_o damnation_n use_v probable_a and_o credible_a mean_n to_o dissuade_v we_o from_o our_o old_a error_n lest_o that_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o we_o shall_v leave_v they_o we_o persist_v still_o in_o they_o or_o least_o that_o we_o expose_v ourselves_o to_o danger_n of_o embrace_v new_a heresy_n for_o old_a religion_n as_o easy_o we_o may_v if_o without_o any_o reason_n at_o all_o we_o will_v forsake_v that_o faith_n in_o which_o we_o and_o our_o great_a grand_a father_n be_v baptize_v for_o although_o faith_n be_v a_o theological_a virtue_n and_o therefore_o as_o divine_v say_v consist_v not_o in_o a_o mean_v betwixt_v two_o extreme_n in_o respect_n of_o god_n who_o be_v the_o object_n because_o he_o be_v prima_fw-la veritas_fw-la who_o we_o can_v not_o credit_v to_o soon_o nor_o to_o much_o yet_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o and_o the_o mean_n by_o which_o we_o come_v to_o know_v god_n his_o authority_n we_o may_v exceed_v in_o believe_v and_o we_o may_v be_v want_v in_o belief_n they_o be_v deficient_a and_o to_o slow_v in_o believe_v who_o when_o god_n his_o mind_n and_o will_n be_v propose_v by_o sufficient_a motive_n &_o token_n yet_o will_v not_o give_v credit_n this_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o be_v so_o slow_a and_o hard_a of_o belief_n that_o though_o christ_n by_o miracle_n and_o prophecy_n have_v prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o messiah_n and_o his_o doctrine_n to_o be_v of_o god_n yet_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v he_o this_o also_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o the_o apostle_n though_o not_o in_o so_o high_a a_o degree_n who_o eye_n be_v so_o blind_v with_o christ_n passion_n that_o all_o though_o the_o stone_n of_o his_o sepulchre_n 14._o luc._n 14._o be_v remove_v and_o that_o the_o angel_n have_v affirm_v that_o he_o be_v rise_v yet_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o who_o therefore_o be_v call_v tardi_fw-la cord_n ad_fw-la credendum_fw-la slow_v of_o hart_n to_o believe_v .._o they_o be_v rash_a and_o to_o hasty_a in_o believe_v who_o believe_v with_o out_o sufficient_a reason_n or_o testimony_n such_o be_v the_o galathian_o who_o be_v to_o easy_o carry_v away_v from_o that_o which_o be_v preach_v unto_o they_o 1._o gal._n 1._o wherefore_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v 19_o eccl._n 19_o that_o he_o be_v light_a of_o heart_n who_n believe_v to_o quick_o and_o in_o deed_n if_o god_n will_v have_v we_o give_v our_o assent_n where_o we_o se_fw-mi no_o reason_n nor_o testimony_n sufficient_a he_o shall_v first_o do_v we_o great_a injury_n because_o it_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o our_o understanding_n to_o be_v move_v at_o least_o by_o probability_n or_o credibilitie_n second_o he_o shall_v expose_v we_o to_o danger_n of_o error_n for_o he_o that_o will_v believe_v when_o no_o probability_n move_v he_o may_v easy_o fall_v into_o a_o error_n wherefore_o it_o may_v well_o be_v suppose_v for_o certain_a that_o god_n will_v not_o have_v we_o to_o believe_v any_o religion_n though_o it_o be_v preach_v in_o his_o name_n unless_o we_o have_v some_o credibilitie_n or_o probability_n to_o persuade_v we_o there_o unto_o if_o then_o our_o reformer_n will_v have_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o in_o these_o and_o these_o point_n we_o and_o our_o forefather_n have_v err_v and_o that_o henceforth_o thus_o and_o thus_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v they_o must_v at_o jest_n show_v we_o probability_n that_o we_o have_v be_v deceive_v and_o that_o they_o be_v send_v to_o put_v we_o into_o the_o way_n for_o other_o wise_a we_o be_v for_o warn_v of_o false_a prophet_n and_o command_v also_o to_o hatken_v unto_o our_o pastor_n we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o forsake_v our_o ancient_a religion_n and_o to_o embrace_v new_a opinion_n nor_o to_o leave_v our_o ancient_a pastor_n and_o to_o run_v after_o stranger_n unless_o they_o can_v bring_v some_o probability_n yea_o and_o that_o great_a than_o the_o old_a father_n can_v bring_v for_o that_o which_o they_o have_v teach_v us._n twoe_n mean_v only_o i_o find_v which_o a_o doctor_n or_o preacher_n can_v use_v to_o persuade_v his_o auditor_n the_o first_o be_v evident_a reason_n which_o convince_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o hearer_n or_o scholar_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v our_o religion_n can_v not_o be_v prove_v because_o reason_n can_v not_o reach_v unto_o mystery_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v above_o reason_n and_o so_o the_o reformer_n can_v not_o convince_v we_o by_o reason_n that_o they_o be_v send_v from_o god_n to_o reform_v we_o and_o that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v the_o verity_n because_o they_o teach_v many_o thing_n above_o reason_n as_o well_o as_o we_o do_v to_o wit_n the_o trinity_n incarnation_n resurrection_n faith_n justification_n and_o such_o like_a yea_o as_o i_o shall_v prove_v hereafter_o many_o thing_n also_o against_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n not_o the_o first_o because_o they_o be_v above_o reason_n not_o the_o second_o because_o they_o be_v against_o reason_n the_o second_o mean_n to_o persuade_v be_v the_o authority_n of_o he_o who_o teach_v this_o mean_v pythagoras_n be_v say_v to_o have_v use_v in_o his_o school_n 9_o a●l._n gel._n l._n 1._o ●_o 9_o who_o command_v his_o scholar_n to_o silence_n for_o the_o space_n of_o two_o year_n all_o which_o time_n they_o may_v only_o harken_v but_o not_o ask_v any_o question_n and_o for_o that_o time_n they_o wear_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hearer_n after_o ward_v they_o may_v ask_v question_n of_o their_o master_n but_o when_o he_o have_v answer_v they_o may_v ask_v no_o reason_n but_o must_v content_v themselves_o with_o his_o authority_n and_o count_v it_o sufficient_a that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o say_v so_o now_o authority_n be_v win_v either_o by_o wit_n and_o learning_n or_o by_o virtue_n or_o antiquity_n or_o number_n or_o office_n and_o dignity_n and_o the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v because_o wise_a and_o learned_a man_n be_v like_a to_o see_v far_a into_o matter_n and_o so_o the_o more_o willing_o we_o believe_v they_o virtuous_a man_n be_v dear_a unto_o god_n and_o so_o we_o be_v more_o easy_o persuade_v to_o think_v that_o god_n impart_v his_o mind_n unto_o they_o most_o
of_o their_o own_o king_n but_o of_o stranger_n also_o &_o hame_o by_o the_o king_n of_o asia_n and_o that_o there_o be_v never_o doubt_v of_o this_o till_o the_o samaritan_n make_v a_o schism_n after_o that_o andronicus_n have_v tell_v this_o tale_n the_o prolocutour_n of_o the_o samaritan_n begin_v to_o speak_v but_o be_v demand_v to_o show_n the_o like_a antiquity_n and_o succession_n they_o can_v not_o but_o rather_o be_v enforce_v to_o bewray_fw-fr their_z infancy_n and_o the_o revolt_n which_o long_o after_o that_o god_n have_v be_v worship_v in_o jerusalem_n they_o make_v from_o the_o jew_n wherefore_o the_o king_n pronounce_v sentence_n for_o the_o jew_n and_o declare_v they_o to_o be_v the_o right_a worshipper_n &_o the_o temple_n to_o be_v the_o right_a place_n where_o the_o jewish_a religion_n be_v to_o be_v exercise_v if_o in_o like_a manner_n before_o the_o like_a judge_n i_o for_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a religion_n and_o some_o one_o of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o new_a religion_n be_v appoint_v prolocutour_n for_o who_o think_v thou_o gentle_a reader_n will_v the_o sentence_n be_v pronounce_v if_o i_o shall_v begin_v to_o show_v a_o succession_n of_o our_o pastor_n and_o religion_n by_o all_o history_n and_o monument_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n 3._o iren._n l._n ●_o c._n 3._o if_o i_o shall_v show_v a_o catalogue_n out_o of_o ireneus_fw-la of_o all_o the_o pope_n from_o saint_n peter_n to_o eleutherius_fw-la 16●_n l._n ●_o count_n donatist_n epist_n 16●_n out_o of_o optatus_n unto_o damasus_n out_o of_o saint_n austin_n unto_o anastasius_n out_o of_o eusebius_n genebrard_n and_o other_o even_o unto_o these_o day_n and_o that_o in_o this_o succession_n by_o no_o historiographer_n be_v ever_o note_v any_o change_n or_o fall_v in_o church_n or_o religion_n if_o i_o shall_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o same_o history_n that_o this_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n be_v that_o which_o be_v persecute_v by_o the_o evil_a emperor_n and_o afterward_o enrich_v by_o constantine_n and_o other_o good_a king_n and_o prince_n that_o for_o this_o church_n church_n and_o monastery_n be_v build_v that_o in_o this_o church_n all_o the_o general_a counsel_n be_v hold_v that_o by_o this_o church_n all_o heretic_n be_v condemn_v that_o this_o church_n be_v even_o by_o pagans_n count_v the_o only_a christiane_n church_n that_o all_o ancient_a father_n doctors_n martyr_n &_o saint_n be_v member_n of_o this_o church_n shall_v i_o not_o incline_v the_o judge_n to_o my_o part_n if_o when_o i_o have_v do_v some_o one_o of_o the_o ministry_n shall_v rise_v up_o and_o begin_v to_o tell_v his_o tale_n and_o say_v that_o all_o the_o ancient_a christian_n be_v deceive_v and_o live_v in_o error_n and_o ignorance_n until_o that_o luther_n or_o zuinglius_fw-la or_o caluin_n like_v so_o many_o son_n appear_v in_o our_o horizont_n that_o the_o religion_n of_o these_o man_n be_v the_o reform_a religion_n though_o it_o be_v never_o hard_a of_o before_o and_o if_o be_v by_o i_o demand_v how_o their_o preacher_n prove_v their_o mission_n he_o can_v allege_v no_o proof_n at_o all_o or_o be_v ask_v how_o they_o prove_v their_o religion_n he_o shall_v answer_v by_o scripture_n sense_v by_o his_o private_a spirit_n which_o alway_n have_v be_v the_o proof_n of_o all_o heresy_n and_o be_v command_v by_o the_o judge_n to_o show_v if_o their_o church_n be_v christian_a a_o succession_n of_o their_o bishope_n preacher_n and_o practice_v of_o religion_n he_o shall_v fly_v unto_o a_o invisible_a church_n or_o say_v that_o the_o church_n christian_n decay_v quite_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o yet_o can_v nether_a tell_v the_o time_n nor_o the_o occasion_n of_o so_o notoriouse_a a_o fall_n nor_o allege_v one_o historiographer_n that_o write_v of_o so_o great_a a_o mutation_n in_o the_o world_n if_o i_o shall_v tell_v the_o first_o tale_n and_o he_o the_o second_o for_o i_o see_v not_o what_o better_a answer_v he_o can_v make_v for_o himself_o think_v not_o thou_o gentle_a reader_n that_o the_o judge_n will_v answer_v that_o although_o he_o believe_v not_o at_o all_o in_o christ_n or_o his_o religion_n yet_o that_o it_o seem_v most_o probable_a that_o catholic_n be_v the_o true_a christianes_n and_o that_o their_o church_n be_v the_o place_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o this_o religion_n as_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v of_o the_o jewishe_a service_n and_o worship_v of_o god_n if_o they_o there_o be_v no_o probable_a reason_n by_o which_o these_o reformer_n can_v persuade_v we_o to_o their_o reformation_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o we_o shall_v forsake_v our_o ancient_a pastor_n to_o follow_v they_o unless_o we_o will_v byndeour_n self_n also_o to_o harken_v unto_o all_o false_a prophet_n preach_v they_o never_o so_o absurd_a &_o improbable_a doctrine_n and_o so_o open_a the_o gap_n unto_o all_o heretic_n and_o heresy_n the_o sixth_o chapter_n prove_v that_o they_o have_v no_o judge_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o so_o do_v open_a the_o gap_n to_o all_o heretic_n who_o may_v preach_v what_o they_o listen_v if_o there_o be_v no_o judge_n to_o contrelle_fw-fr they_o as_o yet_o there_o be_v never_o see_v any_o society_n well_o order_v be_v it_o great_a or_o little_a but_o some_o governor_n or_o moderator_n rule_v and_o manage_v the_o same_o for_o many_o man_n as_o they_o have_v many_o head_n so_o have_v they_o diverse_a opinion_n and_o as_o they_o be_v of_o different_a complexion_n and_o constitution_n so_o be_v they_o of_o diverse_a conceit_n and_o inclination_n and_o therefore_o will_v never_o aggree_v in_o one_o unless_o they_o be_v direct_v and_o command_v by_o one_o or_o at_o least_o by_o diverse_a which_o aggree_n in_o one_o wherefore_o we_o see_v that_o every_o kingdom_n have_v his_o king_n every_o dukedom_n a_o duke_n every_o common_a wealth_n a_o magistrate_n every_o city_n a_o maiour_n or_o baily_n every_o army_n a_o general_n yea_o every_o village_n allmoste_o have_v a_o constable_n every_o family_n a_o good_a man_n of_o the_o house_n every_o school_n a_o schoolmaster_n and_o shall_v not_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o society_n of_o his_o faithful_a and_o choose_a servant_n have_v a_o visible_a head_n to_o direct_v it_o and_o a_o judge_n to_o rule_v it_o by_o law_n and_o govern_v it_o by_o authority_n or_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o he_o have_v leave_v that_o society_n w_o ch_o he_o call_v his_o spouse_n &_o which_o he_o love_v so_o dear_o that_o he_o die_v for_o it_o as_o a_o kingdom_n with_o out_o a_o king_n a_o city_n with_o out_o a_o maiour_n a_o army_n with_o out_o a_o general_n a_o ship_n with_o out_o a_o pilot_n a_o fold_n with_o out_o a_o pastor_n or_o a_o body_n with_o out_o a_o head_n no_o no_o i_o warrant_v you_o he_o that_o descend_v from_o heaven_n to_o earth_n to_o establish_v this_o spiritual_a kingdom_n and_o shed_v his_o blood_n to_o enrich_v it_o have_v well_o provide_v for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o same_o and_o so_o well_o that_o thereby_o you_o shall_v perceive_v the_o skill_n and_o wisdom_n of_o the_o governor_n and_o true_o if_o by_o the_o effect_n we_o may_v take_v a_o scantling_n of_o the_o cause_n the_o good_a lie_n order_n the_o firm_a peace_n and_o long_o continuance_n of_o the_o church_n will_v bear_v witness_n of_o a_o most_o prudent_a princess_n gowernement_n for_o as_o diverse_a stone_n in_o a_o build_n can_v never_o have_v keep_v that_o order_n as_o to_o make_v a_o goodly_a palace_n have_v not_o some_o intelligent_a workman_n dispose_v they_o so_o this_o goodly_a order_n &_o hierarchy_n in_o the_o church_n can_v never_o have_v be_v establish_v have_v not_o some_o prince_n and_o gowernour_n put_v every_o subject_n in_o his_o room_n and_o place_n and_o as_o many_o string_n or_o voice_n can_v never_o make_v one_o musical_a harmony_n unless_o some_o con_n musician_n tune_v the_o string_n and_o give_v unto_o every_o voice_n his_o tone_n so_o shall_v many_o people_n of_o diverse_a disposition_n nation_n sex_n condition_n such_o as_o be_v in_o the_o church_n never_o live_v in_o peace_n free_a from_o jar_n &_o discord_n unless_o there_o be_v a_o superior_a to_o tune_v these_o diverse_a nature_n &_o a_o head_n to_o direct_v these_o diverse_a membre_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o the_o sheep_n which_o want_n a_o shep_n hear_v can_v not_o long_o keep_v together_o but_o be_v like_a to_o wander_v and_o to_o come_v in_o danger_n of_o the_o wolf_n as_o a_o army_n can_v not_o long_o withstand_v the_o enemy_n unless_o some_o general_n appoint_v and_o commannud_a every_o soldier_n to_o his_o stand_n and_o as_o the_o ship_n be_v never_o any_o long_a time_n free_a from_o sand_n or_o rock_n when_o the_o mariner_n be_v absent_a so_o can_v never_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n especial_o
forsake_v the_o assembly_n and_o that_o some_o go_v out_o from_o we_o 1●_n act._n 1●_n do_v trouble_v other_o with_o word_n 6._o ●o_o 6._o so_o the_o first_o sacramentary_n i_o mean_v the_o capharnaite_n who_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o christ_n can_v give_v his_o body_n to_o be_v eat_v leave_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o will_v walk_v no_o more_o with_o they_o so_o that_o go_v out_o or_o breakinge_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o note_n and_o mark_v of_o a_o heretic_n wherefore_o tertulian_n say_v 8._o l._n praesc_fw-la c._n 8._o that_o we_o must_v not_o marvel_v nor_o think_v the_o worse_o of_o our_o church_n when_o some_o do_v leave_v we_o because_o say_v he_o this_o show_v we_o to_o be_v of_o the_o true_a christian_a company_n according_a unto_o that_o they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o 10._o ibid._n ●_o 10._o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o yea_o he_o say_v that_o all_o heretic_n be_v once_o roman_n in_o religion_n and_o therefore_o now_o be_v heretic_n because_o they_o separate_v themselves_o as_o martion_n and_o valentinus_n do_v of_o who_o say_v he_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o believe_v once_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n until_o under_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la they_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o same_o and_o this_o note_n be_v so_o certain_a that_o if_o you_o run_v over_o the_o catalogue_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o all_o be_v once_o member_n of_o that_o society_n which_o be_v common_o call_v and_o count_v christiane_n and_o when_o they_o leave_v the_o same_o they_o be_v by_o &_o by_o note_a for_o rebel_n run_v gate_n and_o apostatate_n &_o as_o the_o scripture_n note_v the_o time_n and_o occasion_n 18._o 3._o reg._n 18._o when_o the_o samaritan_n leave_v the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o will_v wvorship_v god_n no_o more_o in_o that_o place_n as_o the_o jew_v ever_o have_v do_v so_o have_v ecclesiastical_a history_n note_v the_o time_n &_o occasion_n of_o the_o breach_n of_o every_o archheretic_n from_o the_o church_n and_o as_o yet_o we_o well_o remember_v it_o be_v not_o so_o long_o the_o time_n and_o occasion_n of_o luther_n revolt_n from_o the_o catholic_a and_o roman_a church_n yea_o himself_o confess_v that_o once_o he_o be_v a_o papist_n and_o that_o in_o the_o high_a degree_n for_o these_o word_n he_o once_o utter_v in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o galarhians_n gal._n ●n_fw-fr t._n cp_n gal._n si_fw-la quisquam_fw-la alius_fw-la certè_fw-la ego_fw-la ante_fw-la lucem_fw-la ●uangelij_fw-la pie_n sensi_fw-la &_o zelavi_fw-la pro_fw-la papisticis_fw-la legibus_fw-la &_o patrum_fw-la traditionibus_fw-la easque_fw-la magno_fw-la serto_fw-la ut_fw-la sanctus_fw-la &_o earum_fw-la obseruationem_fw-la tanquam_fw-la necessariam_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la u●si_fw-la &_o defendi_fw-la if_o ever_o any_o true_o i_o befoee_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v mean_n his_o own_o gospel_n think_v holy_o and_o be_v zealon_n for_o the_o papistical_a law_n and_o the_o father_n tradition_n and_o i_o urge_v and_o defend_v they_o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la and_o their_o observation_n as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n yea_o he_o confess_v how_o he_o watch_v fast_v pray_v and_o tame_v his_o body_n when_o he_o be_v a_o friar_n yea_o say_v he_o tanta_fw-la erat_fw-la authoritas_fw-la papae_fw-la apud_fw-la i_o ut_fw-la vel_fw-la in_o minimus_fw-la dissentire_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la putarem_fw-la crimen_fw-la aeterna_fw-la damnatione_fw-la dignum_fw-la so_o great_a be_v the_o pope_n authority_n with_o i_o that_o i_o think_v it_o a_o crime_n worthy_a eternal_a damnation_n to_o dissent_v from_o he_o in_o the_o least_o point_n ibid._n ibid._n yea_o once_o say_v he_o i_o be_v so_o zealous_a for_o the_o pope_n that_o i_o think_v john_n husse_v a_o wicked_a heretic_n and_o will_v have_v burn_v he_o with_o my_o own_o hand_n and_o as_o luther_n be_v so_o be_v all_o the_o pack_n of_o their_o first_o father_n child_n of_o our_o mother_n the_o catholic_a church_n and_o since_o they_o be_v go_v out_o they_o wear_v the_o badge_n and_o cognisaunce_n of_o a_o heretic_n they_o will_v answer_v peradventure_o that_o we_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n but_o werelonge_v before_o metamorphize_v and_o change_v into_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o devil_n &_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v time_n for_o they_o to_o leave_v us._n but_o if_o we_o be_v degenerate_v i_o demand_v of_o they_o when_o under_o what_o pope_n or_o emperor_n and_o in_o what_o age_n and_o from_o what_o church_n do_v we_o degenerate_a out_o of_o what_o church_n do_v we_o make_v a_o breach_n for_o as_o nothing_o degenerate_v but_o from_o that_o which_o it_o be_v before_o and_o if_o they_o can_v not_o tell_v we_o when_o we_o begone_v to_o degenerate_v nor_o non_fw-la what_o church_n then_o can_v they_o not_o put_v this_o mark_n upon_o us._n yea_o i_o shall_v in_o this_o book_n prove_v that_o our_o church_n which_o now_o be_v aggrege_v with_o the_o church_n which_o in_o all_o age_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n be_v count_v the_o only_a christian_a church_n nether_a be_v it_o sufficient_a to_o say_v that_o we_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n for_o so_o arrius_n nestorius_n eutiches_n and_o every_o heretic_n be_v accustom_v to_o say_v who_o notwithstanding_o because_o they_o go_v forth_o of_o that_o church_n which_o be_v common_o call_v and_o count_v the_o christian_a church_n be_v count_v heretic_n since_o therefore_o luther_n caluin_n and_o the_o rest_n have_v depart_v from_o our_o church_n which_o be_v and_o still_o be_v call_v the_o christian_a church_n either_o they_o be_v heretic_n or_o else_o arrius_n nestorius_n yea_o simon_n magus_n cerinthus_n and_o ebion_n be_v no_o heretic_n nether_a can_v they_o brag_v that_o many_o have_v leave_v they_o also_o and_o sever_v themselves_o from_o their_o company_n for_o that_o be_v alway_n the_o manner_n of_o heretic_n not_o long_o to_o continewe_v in_o one_o religion_n but_o to_o divide_v themselves_o into_o many_o sect_n and_o if_o they_o count_v those_o heretic_n who_o go_v from_o they_o &_o make_v new_a sect_n then_o be_v they_o all_o even_o the_o first_o of_o they_o heretic_n because_o the_o first_o of_o they_o go_v out_o from_o us._n wherefore_o in_o few_o word_n to_o con_v prize_n all_o and_o to_o conclude_v which_o i_o intend_v they_o can_v not_o name_v the_o church_n from_o which_o we_o depart_v nor_o the_o time_n nor_o the_o occasion_n we_o can_v tell_v when_o they_o depart_v and_o from_o what_o church_n that_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v and_o be_v still_o common_o count_v the_o true_a christian_a church_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v evident_o that_o we_o be_v still_o in_o the_o right_a church_n because_o there_o be_v never_o any_o other_o out_o of_o w_z ch_o we_o can_v break_v forth_o they_o be_v run_v out_o we_o wear_v the_o badge_n of_o true_a christianes_n which_o be_v never_o to_o go_v out_o never_o to_o forsake_v that_o which_o once_o we_o have_v profess_v they_o be_v note_v with_o the_o mark_n of_o heretic_n which_o be_v to_o go_v out_o and_o to_o forsake_v the_o common_a receive_a church_n and_o so_o if_o ever_o there_o be_v any_o heretic_n so_o call_v and_o count_v for_o break_v forth_o and_o go_v out_o then_o be_v they_o heretic_n and_o never_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o hide_v this_o mark_n go_v they_o never_o so_o disguise_o the_o second_o chapter_n discover_v the_o second_o mark_n of_o a_o heretic_n which_o be_v late_a stand_n &_o novelty_n which_o also_o be_v prove_v to_o agree_v as_o fit_o to_o the_o ghospeller_n of_o this_o time_n as_o to_o any_o heretic_n of_o former_a time_n good_a go_v before_o bad_a truth_n before_o falsehood_n the_o currant_n before_o the_o counterfeit_n and_o be_v before_o nature_n because_o evil_o be_v but_o a_o privation_n of_o the_o good_a and_o falsehood_n be_v that_o which_o swerve_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o counterfeit_n be_v but_o a_o resemblance_n of_o the_o currant_n and_o art_n be_v but_o a_o imitation_n of_o nature_n and_o so_o these_o come_v after_o those_o of_o necessity_n must_v go_v before_o no_o marvel_n then_o if_o religion_n take_v the_o precedence_n of_o superstition_n and_o christian_a faith_n of_o heresy_n which_o be_v but_o a_o privation_n of_o that_o good_a a_o falsity_n swerve_v from_o that_o truth_n a_o counterfeit_a resemblance_n of_o that_o currant_n and_o a_o artificial_a imitation_n of_o christian_a sincerity_n religion_n be_v plant_v before_o superstition_n take_v root_n for_o tue_o be_v root_v before_o vice_n be_v sow_v 18._o mat._n 18._o and_o the_o seed_n of_o true_a faith_n be_v sow_v before_o the_o enemy_n scatter_v the_o evil_a cockle_n of_o heresy_n and_o as_o the_o true_a apostle_n live_v and_o preach_v before_o simon_n magus_n and_o other_o false-prophete_n his_o successor_n so_o true_a faith_fw-mi the_o
time_n be_v all_o novellaunt_n and_o noveller_n upstart_n and_o of_o late_a stand_n arise_v many_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v ever_o count_v the_o only_a true_a church_n for_o luther_n the_o first_o of_o all_o this_o new_a fry_n and_o his_o religion_n be_v not_o yet_o a_o hundred_o year_n old_a it_o be_v as_o certain_a that_o they_o be_v heretic_n and_o their_o religion_n heresy_n as_o that_o arius_n nestorius_n pelagius_n be_v heretic_n and_o the_o same_o father_n and_o scripture_n before_o allege_v which_o have_v condemn_v they_o for_o heretic_n because_o of_o their_o late_a stand_n can_v not_o without_o plain_a partiality_n free_a our_o reformer_n from_o the_o same_o sentence_n who_o be_v the_o same_o badge_n &_o be_v note_v with_o the_o same_o mark_n of_o a_o heretic_n which_o be_v late_a stand_n the_o three_o chapter_n note_v the_o reformer_n with_o another_o mark_n of_o a_o heretic_n which_o be_v a_o particular_a name_n which_o they_o take_v from_o their_o sectmaster_n the_o hart_n of_o man_n be_v a_o secret_a closet_n 4._o psal_n 7._o sap._n 1._o hier._n 11._o th._n 〈◊〉_d p_o q._n 57_o art_n 4._o of_o which_o god_n only_o keep_v the_o key_n it_o be_v a_o bottonlesse_a pit_n which_o he_o only_o who_o search_v the_o hart_n and_o reins_n can_v sound_v to_o the_o bottom_n in_o so_o much_o that_o unless_o god_n reveal_v or_o this_o hart_n of_o man_n vouchsafe_v to_o open_v itself_o nether_a devil_n nor_o angel_n can_v discover_v the_o heart_n cogitation_n much_o less_o can_v one_o man_n tell_v what_o another_o think_v wherefore_o that_o man_n may_v impart_v their_o thought_n one_o to_o another_o god_n have_v give_v they_o a_o tongue_n as_o a_o interpreter_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o a_o messenger_n of_o the_o thought_n and_o a_o mouth_n also_o as_o a_o trumpet_n wherein_o the_o tongue_n sound_v forth_o by_o voice_n what_o the_o hart_n think_v and_o because_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o can_v not_o by_o themselves_o immediate_o be_v bring_v into_o discourse_n the_o tongue_n frame_v word_n and_o give_v name_n which_o go_v for_o the_o thing_n that_o so_o when_o we_o hear_v the_o sound_n of_o the_o word_n &_o name_n we_o may_v understand_v the_o thing_n w_o ch_o be_v speak_v of_o wherefore_o the_o new_a christian_n of_o this_o time_n must_v not_o meruaill_n that_o by_o their_o name_n as_o by_o a_o infallyble_n mark_v i_o sack_v to_o discover_v they_o for_o name_n be_v symbol_n and_o sign_n of_o thing_n by_o which_o we_o know_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n together_o with_o their_o propriety_n but_o what_o will_v you_o say_v be_v this_o name_n by_o which_o they_o be_v convince_v to_o be_v heretic_n it_o be_v the_o surname_n which_o they_o take_v from_o their_o sect_n master_n by_o which_o they_o be_v always_o more_o famous_a then_o by_o their_o proper_a name_n at_o the_o first_o when_o all_o christianes_n be_v of_o one_o hart_n and_o lip_n believe_v and_o profess_v the_o same_o 4._o act._n 4._o they_o be_v call_v all_o by_o the_o same_o name_n as_o christianes_n of_o christ_n brethren_n for_o their_o mutual_a charity_n faithful_a in_o respect_n of_o one_o faith_n but_o when_o certain_a inconstaunte_n and_o devise_v head_n will_v vary_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o certain_a point_n of_o religion_n their_o name_n change_v as_o they_o themselves_o be_v alter_v &_o because_o they_o now_o begin_v to_o leave_v the_o common_a receive_a faith_n which_o christ_n by_o himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n have_v deliver_v they_o be_v no_o more_o call_v by_o the_o common_a name_n of_o christiane_n but_o by_o the_o name_n by_o which_o their_o autour_fw-fr be_v call_v who_o devise_v their_o religion_n and_o so_o as_o in_o faith_n they_o be_v separate_v from_o other_o christian_n so_o in_o name_n also_o which_o explicate_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n they_o be_v of_o necessity_n sever_v simonian_o be_v name_v of_o simon_n magus_n the_o ebionite_n of_o ebion_n marcionite_n of_o martion_n the_o manichy_n of_o manicheus_fw-la the_o arrian_n of_o arrius_n nestorian_n of_o nestorius_n eutichianes_n of_o eutiches_n pelagian_o of_o pelagius_n donatist_n of_o donatus_n who_o not_o with_o stand_v before_o they_o vary_a in_o religion_n and_o follow_v new_a master_n be_v call_v only_o by_o the_o common_a name_n of_o christian_n wherefore_o the_o ancient_a father_n ever_o condemn_v they_o as_o heretic_n who_o be_v mark_v with_o these_o particular_a name_n saint_n hierome_n pronounce_v bold_o this_o sentence_n fine_a li._n contra_fw-la lucifer_n in_o fine_a sicubi_fw-la audíeris_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la christiani_n non_fw-la à_fw-la domino_fw-la jesu_fw-la christo_fw-la sed_fw-la à_fw-la quopiam_fw-la alio_fw-la nuncupari_fw-la u●pote_fw-la marcionitas_fw-la valentinianos_n montense_n etc._n etc._n scito_fw-la non_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la christi_fw-la sed_fw-la antichristi_a esse_fw-la synagogam_fw-la if_o anywhere_a thou_o here_o of_o they_o who_o be_v call_v christian_n yet_o take_v their_o name_n not_o of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o of_o some_o other_o as_o for_o example_n of_o they_o be_v call_v marcionit_n valentinian_o montanist_n etc._n etc._n know_v thou_o that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o synagogue_n of_o antichriste_n justinus_n martyr_n discri_v heretic_n by_o the_o same_o badge_n and_o mark_n triphone_n dial._n cum_fw-la triphone_n there_o be_v say_v he_o and_o ever_o be_v many_o which_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n yet_o be_v call_v by_o diverse_a surname_n as_o marcionit_n valentinian_o basilidian_o saturninian_o every_o one_o biorrow_v a_o name_n of_o the_o first_o inventour_n of_o their_o doctrine_n of_o such_o kind_n of_o man_n this_o be_v saint_n ciprianes_n opinion_n they_o which_o be_v once_o christian_n novatum_fw-la ep._n ad_fw-la novatum_fw-la now_o novatians_n be_v now_o no_o more_o christian_n because_o say_v he_o primam_fw-la fidem_fw-la vestram_fw-la perfidia_fw-la posteriori_fw-la per_fw-la nominis_fw-la appellationem_fw-la mutasti_fw-la you_o have_v change_v your_o former_a faith_n by_o a_o late_a infidelity_n by_o the_o appellation_n of_o your_o name_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o these_o father_n be_v account_v alway_v such_o nickname_v person_n as_o heretic_n be_v easy_o see_v 18._o mat._n 18._o because_o such_o as_o leave_v the_o church_n and_o will_v not_o here_o her_o voice_n be_v alway_n esteem_v as_o heretic_n as_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d import_v which_o signify_v election_n and_o separation_n 6._o li._n 2._o contr●_n faust_n c._n 3._o cipr._n l._n 1._o cp_n 6._o and_o therefore_o s._n austin_n and_o saint_n cyprian_n put_v this_o difference_n betwixt_v a_o heretic_n and_o a_o schismatic_n that_o although_o both_o do_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n yet_o a_o schismatic_n only_o be_v divide_v in_o will_n contumacy_n and_o breach_n of_o charity_n a_o heretic_n also_o in_o faith_n and_o opinion_n and_o therefore_o see_v that_o these_o diverse_a name_n take_v from_o diverse_a autour_n argue_v such_o a_o leparation_n for_o if_o they_o have_v still_o remain_v in_o that_o church_n which_o common_o be_v call_v christian_a and_o have_v not_o follow_v newmaster_n there_o have_v need_v no_o distinction_n of_o name_n from_o other_o christian_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o all_o such_o as_o be_v distinguish_v thus_o in_o name_n from_o other_o christian_n be_v divide_v also_o from_o they_o in_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o so_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n but_o perfidiouse_a heretic_n i_o demand_v now_o of_o our_o lutheran_n zuinglianes_n caluiniste_n osiandrian_o bezist_n brownist_n martinist_n and_o such_o like_a new_a name_v christian_n of_o this_o age_n whether_o they_o dare_v stand_v to_o the_o sentence_n of_o justinus_n martyr_n s._n cyprian_n and_o saint_n hierom_n in_o this_o point_n true_o i_o think_v they_o dare_v not_o and_o i_o think_v also_o that_o they_o have_v good_a cause_n for_o if_o that_o they_o be_v heretic_n which_o be_v surname_v of_o particular_a autour_n as_o they_o plain_o affirm_v if_o our_o new_a christianes_n be_v so_o surname_v as_o all_o the_o world_n wilbe_n witness_v that_o they_o be_v then_o must_v needs_o follow_v this_o conclusion_n that_o they_o also_o be_v heretic_n but_o to_o conclude_v more_o plain_o that_o which_o be_v intend_v this_o mark_n of_o a_o heretic_n can_v in_o no_o wise_a aggree_n unto_o catholic_n but_o rather_o to_o they_o aggrege_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a christian_n for_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o arian_n they_o be_v count_v true_a christian_n which_o be_v call_v by_o general_a name_n christian_n and_o catholic_n and_o they_o be_v esteem_v of_o as_o heretic_n which_o have_v particular_a name_n derive_v from_o the_o autour_fw-fr of_o their_o sect_n as_o arian_n aetian_o eudoxian_o and_o such_o like_a so_o now_o we_o that_o be_v call_v by_o the_o same_o
name_n of_o catholic_n and_o christian_n but_o by_o no_o name_n take_v from_o any_o autour_fw-fr must_v needs_o be_v take_v for_o true_a christian_n who_o as_o they_o never_o change_v name_n so_o never_o change_v religion_n and_o the_o reformer_n who_o be_v call_v lutheran_n caluiniste_n zwinglians_n and_o such_o like_a of_o some_o particular_a sectmaster_n or_o other_o must_v needs_o be_v condemn_v for_o heretic_n and_o as_o before_o that_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n forsake_v the_o common_a receive_a faith_n they_o go_v by_o the_o common_a name_n of_o christian_n and_o catholic_n and_o never_o take_v unto_o they_o particular_a name_n before_o they_o follow_v particular_a master_n and_o embrace_v particular_a doctrine_n so_o before_o luther_n and_o caluin_n revolt_v from_o the_o church_n they_o go_v by_o the_o common_a name_n of_o christian_n and_o never_o change_v their_o name_n till_o they_o change_v their_o religion_n neither_o be_v any_o christian_n call_v lutheran_n caluiniste_n or_o such_o like_a before_o they_o rely_v upon_o new_a and_o particular_a master_n and_o as_o the_o arian_n because_o they_o can_v impose_v no_o name_n of_o any_o autour_fw-fr to_o the_o catholic_a christian_n be_v fain_o to_o call_v they_o homo●usians_n of_o their_o doctrine_n as_o before_o they_o they_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v carnal_a for_o defend_v 2._o mariadge_n against_o tertulian_n and_o the_o montanistes_n so_o at_o this_o time_n our_o reformer_n be_v fain_o to_o call_v catholic_n papist_n for_o hold_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v no_o new_a autour_fw-fr of_o any_o new_a religion_n but_o a_o ancient_a succesfour_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o vicar_n of_o christ_n as_o for_o the_o name_n of_o thomist_n and_o scotist_n they_o be_v no_o name_n of_o autour_n of_o new_a religion_n because_o all_o hold_v the_o same_o faith_n but_o of_o autour_n of_o some_o other_o new_a opinion_n or_o manner_n of_o teach_v in_o philosophy_n and_o school_n point_n like_o wise_a the_o name_n of_o benedictin_o dominicane_n jesuite_n be_v name_n derive_v from_o autour_n of_o new_a state_n of_o life_n but_o not_o of_o new_a faith_n or_o religion_n so_o that_o in_o we_o who_o they_o call_v papist_n be_v no_o name_n which_o argue_v we_o to_o be_v heretic_n in_o the_o reformer_n be_v particular_a name_n of_o particular_a author_n of_o new_a point_n of_o religion_n &_o so_o they_o wear_v the_o character_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o be_v infamous_a heretic_n if_o montanus_n martion_n arius_n be_v worthy_o call_v heretic_n the_o four_o chapter_n discover_v another_o mark_n of_o a_o heretic_n which_o be_v a_o renovation_n almost_o of_o all_o old_a heresy_n which_o argue_v the_o reformer_n to_o be_v heretic_n if_o ever_o any_o heretofore_o be_v just_o count_v so_o many_o there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n who_o find_v many_o absurdity_n in_o the_o new_a religion_n and_o yet_o some_o difficulty_n also_o in_o the_o old_a will_v neither_o hold_v altogether_o with_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o but_o comfort_v themselves_o with_o a_o flatter_a opinion_n that_o a_o christian_n may_v be_v save_v in_o all_o religion_n so_o that_o he_o retain_v the_o principalle_v article_n of_o christian_a belief_n for_o say_v they_o if_o he_o be_v firm_o ground_v in_o a_o right_a faith_n of_o the_o incarnation_n &_o trinity_n persuade_v himself_o that_o god_n be_v one_o in_o essence_n and_o three_o in_o person_n and_o that_o christ_n be_v one_o in_o person_n yet_o subsist_v in_o twoe_n nature_n that_o he_o suffer_v for_o mankind_n &_o be_v the_o messiah_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n he_o be_v a_o christian_a good_a enough_o &_o may_v be_v save_v well_o enough_o whatsoever_o his_o opinion_n be_v in_o lesser_a matter_n as_o justification_n merit_n sacrament_n and_o such_o like_a which_o to_o they_o be_v but_o petty_a matter_n &_o not_o of_o such_o importance_n as_o that_o a_o man_n salvation_n shall_v depend_v thereon_o but_o this_o opinion_n of_o they_o will_v they_o never_o so_o fain_o that_o it_o be_v true_a be_v most_o untrue_a and_o as_o false_a as_o flatter_a and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o one_o only_a opinion_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n obstinate_o defend_v against_o the_o church_n authority_n 〈…〉_o th._n ●_o ●_o q._n s._n a._n &_o s_o p._n q._n ●_o 〈…〉_o be_v sufficient_a to_o dismember_v a_o christian_a from_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n his_o holy_a church_n in_o that_o it_o deprive_v he_o of_o infuse_a faith_n which_o be_v the_o glue_v yea_o the_o s●_n new_a which_o unit_v the_o member_n of_o this_o body_n together_o and_o in_o deed_n as_o yet_o we_o never_o hear_v of_o a_o heretic_n but_o he_o profess_v some_o principal_a part_n of_o christiane_n faith_n as_o that_o christ_n be_v god_n and_o man_n or_o the_o redeemer_n of_o mankind_n or_o the_o autour_fw-fr of_o the_o la_o of_o grace_n or_o some_o such_o like_a for_o if_o he_o altogether_o deny_v christ_n he_o be_v rather_o a_o apostata_fw-la than_o a_o heretic_n for_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n who_o profess_v christ_n in_o some_o sort_n and_o himself_o also_o a_o christian_a yet_o obstinate_o deny_v some_o part_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o he_o be_v a_o apostata_fw-la who_o quite_o renounce_v christ_n and_o his_o religion_n wherefore_o unless_o we_o will_v grant_v that_o all_o heretic_n may_v be_v save_v we_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o one_o heresy_n be_v sufficient_a to_o damn_v a_o man_n perpetual_o but_o in_o this_o matter_n lest_o my_o censur_n seem_v to_o rigorous_a &_o my_o sentence_n to_o severe_a i_o will_v allege_v scripture_n which_o can_v not_o deceive_v we_o if_o they_o be_v right_o understand_v our_o saviour_n christ_n denounce_v he_o to_o be_v like_o a_o ethnic_n a_o publican_n which_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n 1●_n mat._n 1●_n and_o he_o say_v not_o who_o will_v not_o give_v credit_n unto_o she_o in_o principal_a matter_n but_o absolute_o he_o say_v if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o there_o as_o a_o ethnic_n and_o publican_n that_o be_v shun_v his_o company_n as_o the_o jew_n do_v all_o familiarity_n with_o pagans_n and_o publican_n and_o again_o christ_n threaten_v that_o he_o 1●_n mar._n 1●_n who_o believe_v not_o sh●lbe_n damn_v to_o which_o aggrege_v saint_n paul_n say_v that_o without_o faith_n 11._o heb._n 11._o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n mean_v no_o doubt_n a_o whole_a and_o inty_a faith_n devoid_a of_o all_o error_n for_o else_o all_o heretic_n may_v be_v save_v who_o believe_v aright_o some_o part_n of_o christian_a belief_n ●●_o gal._n ●●_o wherefore_o saint_n paul_n amongst_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o be_v of_o a_o man_n which_o follow_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o his_o own_o sensuality_n and_o like_n recken_v not_o only_a fornication_n drunkenness_n murder_n and_o idolatry_n but_o also_o dissension_n sect_n and_o heresy_n and_o against_o all_o these_o work_n he_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n of_o damnation_n i_o fortel_v you_o as_o i_o have_v for_o tell_v you_o that_o they_o which_o do_v such_o thing_n shall_v not_o obtain_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o sentence_n as_o he_o will_v have_v pronounce_v against_o one_o fornication_n or_o murder_n so_o will_v he_o against_o one_o heresy_n to_o this_o aggrege_v athanasius_n in_o his_o creed_n say_v that_o unless_o a_o christian_a keep_v entire_o and_o inviolate_o the_o catholic_a faith_n ath●_n symb._n ath●_n he_o can_v not_o be_v save_v which_o to_o i_o seem_v a_o sufficient_a argument_n that_o one_o only_a heresy_n be_v a_o sufficient_a matter_n of_o condemnation_n and_o true_o if_o we_o will_v look_v back_o to_o ancient_a time_n and_o take_v a_o view_n of_o ecclesiastical_a history_n &_o counsel_n we_o shall_v sinde_v that_o for_o some_o fewerrour_n yea_o sometime_o for_o one_o only_a and_o that_o not_o in_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o our_o belief_n many_o have_v be_v accurse_v and_o condemn_v for_o heretic_n pelagius_n believe_v that_o there_o be_v three_o divine_a person_n equal_a coaequall_a and_o consubstantial_a he_o profess_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n and_o man_n and_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o by_o his_o grace_n we_o may_v more_o easy_o come_v to_o heaven_n yet_o because_o that_o he_o aver_v that_o without_o this_o grace_n we_o may_v keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o with_o all_o that_o little_a infant_n be_v nether_a conceive_v nor_o bear_v in_o originalle_a sin_n hewa_v by_o the_o common_a voice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o christian_a world_n aug._n posiid_n in_o vi●●_n aug._n condemn_v fora_fw-la damnable_a heretic_n vigilantius_n believe_v also_o rhe_n trinity_n and_o incarnation_n and_o yet_o for_o that_o he_o condemn_v and_o contemn_a relic_n vigille_n light_v of_o candle_n in_o the_o church_n prayer_n to_o saint_n and_o
tritheite_n theopaschite_n agnoetian_n severite_n and_o such_o like_a the_o eutychian_o into_o monophysites_n jacobite_n acephalites_n and_o theodosian_o wherefore_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v observe_v that_o dissension_n be_v a_o mark_n inseparable_o fasten_v unto_o heretic_n 42._o l._n praescr_n c._n 42._o i_o lie_v say_v tertulian_n if_o they_o vary_v not_o from_o their_o own_o rule_n while_o every_o one_o at_o his_o pleasur_n alter_v and_o modifi_v he_o say_v tune_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v even_o as_o the_o first_o autour_fw-fr frame_v they_o at_o his_o own_o arbitrement_n the_o increase_n declare_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o beginning_n and_o origin_n the_o same_o be_v lawful_a for_o valentinus_n and_o for_o the_o marcionit_n which_o be_v lawful_a for_o martion_n to_o wit_n to_o devise_v new_a sect_n and_o opinion_n as_o their_o sect_n master_n do_v before_o they_o as_o donate_n say_v saint_n austin_n endeavour_v to_o divide_v christ_n that_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n 29._o l._n the_o ago_o christ_n c._n 29._o so_o he_o his_o own_o scholar_n by_o daily_a hack_n and_o mangle_v divide_v into_o many_o piece_n now_o that_o the_o new_a christian_n of_o this_o our_o last_o age_n be_v in_o like_a manner_n divide_v and_o consequent_o of_o the_o same_o paste_n and_o kind_a it_o be_v toe_n toe_n manifest_a luther_n be_v the_o first_o man_n who_o in_o this_o last_o age_n beat_v his_o wit_n to_o devise_v new_a faith_n &_o religion_n and_o for_o a_o time_n he_o be_v follow_v by_o many_o but_o in_o time_n also_o his_o follower_n fall_v from_o he_o who_o perceive_v that_o they_o have_v as_o good_a authority_n to_o preach_v new_a doctrine_n as_o luther_n have_v for_o they_o can_v say_v also_o that_o christ_n send_v they_o and_o they_o can_v allege_v scripture_n for_o their_o opinion_n if_o they_o may_v interpret_v it_o by_o their_o private_a spirit_n as_o why_o may_v they_o not_o as_o well_o as_o he_o they_o think_v it_o more_o honourable_a to_o be_v follow_v then_o to_o follow_v and_o to_o be_v master_n then_o scholar_n and_o so_o leave_v luther_n in_o the_o lurche_n they_o devise_v also_o new_a doctrine_n different_a from_o he_o and_o so_o become_v sect_n master_n as_o well_o as_o he_o zuinglius_fw-la therefore_o be_v weary_a of_o luther_n service_n who_o he_o have_v court_v to_o long_o and_o perceive_v how_o willing_o luther_n will_v have_v deny_v the_o real_a presence_n thereby_o to_o have_v prejudice_v the_o pope_n but_o that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o confess_v seem_v to_o plain_a devise_v a_o gloss_n for_o those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n 26._o mat._n 26._o and_o say_v that_o christ_n call_v the_o bread_n his_o body_n not_o because_o it_o contain_v his_o body_n real_o as_o luther_n affirm_v but_o because_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o as_o zuinglius_fw-la deal_v with_o luther_n so_o do_v other_o for_o now_o the_o lutheran_n be_v divide_v into_o severe_a and_o moderate_a lutheran_n and_o some_o glory_n in_o illyricus_n flaccus_n some_o adore_v melancthon_n so_o that_o now_o luther_n be_v leave_v of_o all_o his_o scholar_n and_o not_o any_o one_o remain_v who_o aggrege_v with_o he_o in_o all_o point_n and_o as_o zuinglius_fw-la deal_v with_o luther_n so_o do_v other_o with_o he_o for_o from_o he_o be_v descend_v the_o osiandrian_o semiosiandrianes_n and_o antiosiandrians_n yea_o out_o of_o zuinglius_fw-la spring_v that_o unhappy_a branch_n caluin_n who_o add_v to_o zuinglius_fw-la opinion_n that_o although_o the_o sacrament_n be_v but_o a_o figure_n of_o christ_n yet_o with_o it_o we_o receive_v christ_n very_o &_o real_o but_o by_o faith_n which_o doctrine_n how_o it_o can_v stand_v with_o itself_o book_n in_o the_o least_o book_n we_o shall_v hereafter_o in_o this_o work_n discourse_n and_o now_o these_o man_n scholar_n be_v divide_v into_o lutheran_n &_o double_a lutheran_n zuinglianes_n oecolampadianes_n caluinist_n anabaptist_n trinitarian_n suenkfeldian_o protestaunt_n puritan_n brownist_n martinist_n brethren_n of_o the_o family_n of_o love_n and_o of_o the_o damn_a crew_n and_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o and_o it_o be_v a_o world_n to_o see_v with_o what_o animositie_n these_o brethren_n write_v one_o against_o another_o luther_n write_v severe_o against_o the_o zwinglians_n zuingl_n l._n in_o zuingl_n and_o sacramentary_n and_o a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n in_o steed_n of_o a_o benediction_n which_o this_o father_n shall_v have_v bestow_v upon_o these_o his_o child_n he_o curse_v they_o to_o hell_n refuse_v all_o writing_n and_o communication_n with_o they_o say_v that_o in_o vain_a they_o believe_v the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n unless_o they_o believe_v also_o the_o real_a presence_n to_o who_o the_o tugurine_a zwinglians_n 〈◊〉_d sur._n a_o 〈◊〉_d answer_v that_o luther_n seek_v his_o own_o honour_n not_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v obstinate_a and_o insolent_a and_o one_o who_o use_v to_o deliver_v man_n up_o to_o satan_n that_o will_v not_o aggree_v to_o his_o opinion_n anglia_fw-it apol._n eccle_n anglia_fw-it and_o yet_o our_o sacramentary_n in_o ingland_n say_v that_o luther_n be_v a_o man_n of_o god_n and_o caluin_n say_v that_o he_o take_v luther_n for_o a_o apostle_n by_o who_o labour_n especial_o the_o truth_n be_v restore_v it_o be_v a_o tedious_a thing_n to_o recount_v their_o dissension_n and_o it_o be_v a_o pitiful_a thing_n to_o behold_v in_o steed_n of_o one_o faith_n in_o which_o all_o the_o world_n before_o luther_n preach_v conspire_v so_o many_o faith_n and_o religion_n of_o this_o dissension_n hilarius_n complain_v in_o these_o word_n const_n l._n count_n const_n it_o be_v dangerous_a and_o miserable_a that_o now_o there_o be_v as_o many_o faith_n be_v as_o will_n and_o as_o many_o doctrine_n as_o manner_n and_o as_o many_o cause_n of_o blasphemy_n as_o vice_n and_o that_o whereas_o according_a as_o there_o be_v one_o god_n one_o lord_n and_o one_o baptism_n so_o one_o faith_n also_o shall_v be_v we_o fall_v from_o one_o faith_n and_o while_o many_o faith_n be_v feign_v no_o faith_n remain_v and_o as_o he_o thus_o complain_v of_o the_o arian_n dissension_n so_o may_v we_o of_o the_o dissension_n of_o this_o age_n of_o which_o also_o the_o very_a autour_n of_o these_o garboil_n themselves_o complain_v most_o lamentable_o zuing._n l._n count_n zuing._n luther_n himself_o say_v that_o there_o be_v such_o dissension_n in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n that_o if_o the_o world_n continue_v we_o must_v have_v recourse_n again_o unto_o the_o trial_n of_o counsel_n else_o we_o shall_v never_o aggree_v aug._n depravat_fw-la conf_n aug._n cithreus_n complain_v that_o the_o evangelicall_a doctor_n he_o mean_v minister_n be_v at_o great_a dagger_n draw_v then_o any_o quarrel_a soldier_n exoraismo_fw-la ep._n de_fw-fr exoraismo_fw-la heshusius_fw-la confess_v that_o whether_o soever_o he_o turn_v his_o eye_n nothing_o almost_o occur_v but_o dissension_n new_a increase_n of_o error_n and_o fall_v of_o great_a doctor_n from_o the_o verity_n so_o that_o even_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o wrangle_n and_o dissension_n in_o religion_n amongst_o they_o and_o consequent_o their_o church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o peace_n and_o unity_n flourish_v which_o have_v uphold_v and_o shall_v still_o uphold_v christ_n kingdom_n against_o the_o tyranny_n of_o persecutor_n &_o may_v and_o slight_a of_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o member_n whereas_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heretic_n must_v needs_o fall_v of_o itself_o by_o civil_a discord_n and_o dissension_n wherefore_o epiphanius_n compare_v they_o to_o the_o viper_n of_o diverse_a kind_n panarie_n in_o panarie_n which_o the_o egyptian_n use_v to_o conclude_v in_o one_o place_n together_o without_o either_o meat_n with_o in_o or_o mean_n to_o get_v out_o for_o as_o they_o when_o they_o be_v almost_o famish_v begin_v with_o tooth_n to_o tear_v and_o deevour_v one_o a_o neither_o till_o that_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v consume_v the_o last_o have_v nothing_o leave_v to_o exercise_v his_o tooth_n on_o die_v for_o hunger_n so_o heretic_n ruin_v one_o a_o neither_o and_o one_o sect_n devour_v asleep_o neither_o till_o at_o length_n the_o last_o die_v of_o itself_o by_o her_o own_o impiety_n other_o compare_v they_o to_o the_o cadmean_a brethren_n which_o be_v now_o soon_o bear_v but_o they_o kill_v one_o a_o neither_o other_o say_v that_o they_o be_v like_o sampson_n fox_n which_o be_v divide_v in_o the_o head_n that_o be_v in_o faith_n but_o yet_o be_v link_v in_o the_o tail_n conspire_v all_o in_o this_o intention_n to_o ruin_v the_o true_a church_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o ruin_v their_o own_o &_o beat_v themselves_o against_o the_o rock_n of_o christ_n church_n they_o do_v but_o break_v themselves_o as_o wave_n do_v 44._o li._n
can_v not_o fulfil_v any_o law_n of_o god_n as_o all_o lutheran_n and_o caluiniste_n be_v be_v persuade_v also_o that_o he_o can_v avoid_v no_o sin_n and_o consequent_o if_o any_o sin_n move_v or_o allure_v he_o either_o by_o profit_n or_o pleasure_n which_o it_o impli_v he_o can_v not_o be_v so_o persuade_v endeavour_n to_o withstand_v the_o temptation_n because_o that_o be_v to_o show_v himself_o able_a to_o resist_v sin_n and_o to_o fulfil_v the_o command_n mentes_fw-la and_o consequent_o to_o condemn_v john_n caluins_n doctrine_n and_o although_o in_o so_o do_v he_o open_v the_o gap_n to_o all_o manner_n of_o iniquity_n yet_o therein_o he_o show_v himself_o a_o true_a caluiniste_n who_n be_v persuade_v by_o religion_n and_o conscience_n that_o he_o have_v nether_a force_n nor_o will_n to_o resist_v any_o sin_n or_o to_o fulfil_v any_o commandment_n must_v not_o yea_o can_v not_o without_o offence_n of_o conscience_n and_o hazard_n of_o faith_n go_v about_o to_o fulfil_v any_o law_n for_o so_o though_o not_o in_o word_n yet_o in_o fact_n and_o deed_n he_o shall_v deny_v his_o religion_n the_o eight_o chapter_n show_v how_o in_o affirm_v that_o christ_n have_v free_v we_o from_o all_o law_n they_o lose_v the_o bridle_n to_o all_o vice_n the_o reformer_n as_o be_v recount_v partly_o in_o the_o three_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n partly_o in_o the_o fifte_a chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o christ_n be_v no_o lawgiver_n but_o rather_o that_o he_o come_v to_o free_v we_o from_o all_o law_n which_o doctrine_n although_o i_o have_v in_o the_o former_a place_n allege_v yet_o to_o ease_v the_o reader_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o here_o also_o to_o set_v down_o the_o samedoctrine_n in_o other_o their_o own_o word_n gal._n in_o cap._n 4._o gal._n luther_n in_o a_o comment_n of_o he_o on_o holy_a scripture_n often_o time_n inculcate_v that_o by_o christ_n we_o be_v so_o free_v from_o all_o law_n that_o none_o of_o they_o can_v bind_v we_o or_o touch_v we_o in_o conscience_n these_o be_v his_o word_n discat_fw-la igitur_fw-la pius_fw-la legem_fw-la &_o christum_fw-la duo_fw-la contraria_fw-la esse_fw-la prorsus_fw-la incompatibilia_fw-la praesente_fw-la christo_fw-la lex_fw-la mullo_n modo_fw-la dominari_fw-la debet_fw-la sed_fw-la cedere_fw-la debet_fw-la è_fw-la conscientia_fw-la &_o relinquere_fw-la cubile_n quòd_fw-la angustius_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la ut_fw-la dvos_fw-la capere_fw-la possit_fw-la soli_fw-la christo_fw-la let_v therefore_o the_o godly_a man_n learn_v to_o know_v that_o christ_n and_o the_o la_o be_v twoe_n contrary_n altogether_o incompatible_a christ_n be_v present_a the_o la_o mun_o in_o no_o wise_a rule_n but_o must_v depart_v from_o conscience_n and_o leave_v the_o bed_n which_o be_v to_o narrow_a for_o twoe_n to_o christ_n alone_o where_o you_o see_v that_o he_o make_v christ_n and_o all_o law_n even_o his_o own_o law_n so_o contrary_a that_o if_o christ_n stand_v no_o la_o can_v stand_v nor_o have_v any_o force_n over_o conscience_n gal._n in_o c._n 2._o gal._n and_o in_o another_o place_n of_o the_o same_o comment_n thus_o he_o define_v quatenus_fw-la est_fw-la christianus_n est_fw-la supra_fw-la omnem_fw-la legem_fw-la as_o he_o be_v a_o christian_n or_o in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o christian_n he_o be_v above_o all_o law_n and_o yet_o again_o in_o another_o work_n of_o he_o christiana_n l._n the_o liberta●●_n christiana_n he_o speak_v more_o bold_o and_o plain_o nullo_fw-la opere_fw-la nulla_fw-la lege_fw-la homini_fw-la christiano_n opus_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la per_fw-la fidem_fw-la sit_fw-la libre_fw-la ab_fw-la omnilege_n for_o a_o christian_n no_o la_o nor_o work_n be_v needful_a see_v that_o by_o faith_n he_o be_v free_a from_o all_o law_n 14_o supra_fw-la &_o l._n 2._o inst_z c._n 2._o §._o ●_o 14_o the_o same_o opinion_n hold_v john_n caluin_n as_o in_o the_o former_a and_o many_o other_o place_n be_v plain_o to_o be_v see_v by_o which_o doctrine_n although_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o make_v christ_n a_o more_o perfect_a redeemer_n as_o before_o be_v note_v yet_o in_o deed_n they_o make_v he_o a_o favourer_n and_o patron_n of_o all_o vice_n and_o wickedness_n for_o if_o we_o be_v free_v from_o all_o obligation_n of_o law_n then_o do_v they_o no_o more_o bind_v we_o then_o law_n abrogate_a if_o they_o bound_v not_o in_o conscience_n than_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o observe_v they_o if_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o observe_v they_o than_o he_o sin_v not_o in_o transgress_v they_o no_o more_o than_o in_o do_v contrary_a to_o a_o la_o which_o be_v abrogate_a because_o every_o sin_n be_v against_o the_o obligation_n of_o one_o law_n or_o other_o yea_o then_o he_o transgress_v not_o because_o where_o be_v no_o obligation_n there_o can_v be_v no_o transgression_n if_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n to_o transgress_v law_n as_o luther_n and_o caluin_n say_v that_o to_o a_o christian_a such_o transgression_n be_v not_o impute_v as_o sin_n then_o need_v not_o any_o christian_a make_v any_o scrouple_n of_o any_o action_n by_o what_o la_o soever_o it_o be_v forbid_v and_o so_o he_o may_v as_o free_o steal_v as_o give_v alm_n and_o as_o bold_o he_o may_v follow_v his_o lust_n and_o sensuality_n as_o live_v chaste_o and_o moderate_v his_o appetite_n for_o where_o no_o la_o byndethe_v in_o conscience_n all_o be_v lawful_a that_o like_v and_o so_o the_o gap_n be_v open_a to_o all_o manner_n of_o vice_n the_o nine_o chapter_n prove_v that_o in_o affirm_v god_n to_o be_v the_o autour_fw-fr of_o sin_n the_o reformer_n open_v the_o gap_n to_o all_o vice_n i_o have_v already_o relate_v the_o blasphemy_n of_o our_o new_a christian_n against_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n and_o i_o have_v demonstrate_v that_o they_o be_v senseless_a absurd_a and_o impious_a in_o make_v god_n the_o autour_fw-fr of_o our_o sin_n who_o mercy_n pardon_v and_o who_o justice_n punishethe_v sin_n but_o can_v not_o work_v or_o commit_v the_o least_o sin_n without_o prejudice_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o deity_n also_o which_o be_v goodness_n itself_o so_o that_o now_o i_o will_v suppose_v for_o my_o premise_n that_o they_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n and_o i_o will_v deducefor_o my_o intend_a conclusion_n that_o this_o doctrine_n lose_v the_o bridle_n unto_o all_o iniquity_n for_o if_o a_o man_n be_v once_o persuade_v as_o all_o caluiniste_n be_v that_o god_n be_v the_o autour_fw-fr and_o worker_n of_o his_o sin_n what_o be_v there_o remain_v to_o restrain_v and_o withhold_a he_o from_o sin_n he_o may_v and_o will_v easy_o discourse_v thus_o with_o himself_o when_o soever_o the_o devil_n urge_v or_o the_o flesh_n allurethe_o or_o the_o world_n entice_v he_o to_o sin_n this_o act_n to_o which_o i_o be_o tempt_v and_o which_o common_o be_v call_v a_o sin_n be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o i_o and_o more_o his_o then_o i_o because_o as_o my_o oracle_n that_o be_v john_n caluin_n tell_v i_o he_o work_v it_o in_o i_o and_o urge_v i_o unto_o it_o why_o then_o shall_v i_o either_o be_v a_o fray_v or_o ashamed_a to_o do_v that_o which_o god_n not_o only_o do_v with_o i_o but_o also_o so_o forcible_o move_v i_o unto_o it_o that_o as_o m._n caluin_n tell_v i_o i_o can_v not_o possible_o resist_v he_o be_o i_o better_a than_o he_o or_o can_v any_o sin_n be_v so_o uglye_a as_o not_o to_o beseem_v i_o which_o beseem_v he_o who_o be_v goodness_n itself_o but_o peradventure_o god_n dispense_v with_o himself_o but_o not_o with_o i_o and_o therefore_o will_v not_o have_v i_o to_o sin_n will_v he_o not_o why_o then_o do_v he_o urge_v and_o egg_n i_o to_o sin_n where_o i_o be_o urge_v certes_o i_o be_o will_v and_o will_v by_o he_o by_o who_o i_o be_o urge_v yea_o if_o sin_n be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v unless_o caluin_n lie_v then_o be_v it_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o will_n for_o as_o david_n say_v he_o do_v all_o by_o his_o will_n and_o as_o divine_v say_v his_o power_n be_v his_o will_n and_o so_o i_o in_o sin_v shall_v do_v his_o pleasure_n and_o conform_v myself_o to_o his_o will_n let_v we_o sin_n then_o free_o we_o do_v but_o god_n will_v and_o let_v we_o not_o make_v scruple_n of_o that_o of_o which_o he_o be_v the_o will_a and_o worker_n let_v we_o not_o blush_v at_o the_o turpitude_n of_o sin_n of_o which_o god_n himself_o be_v not_o ashamed_a nether_a let_v we_o fear_v offence_n where_o we_o do_v our_o master_n will_v and_o pleasure_n rather_o let_v we_o persuade_v ourselves_o that_o all_o sin_n be_v lawful_a and_o please_a to_o god_n because_o they_o be_v the_o work_n of_o his_o will_n and_o consequent_o according_a to_o his_o will_n but_o fie_o rather_o upon_o this_o impious_a and_o licentious_a
sayethe_v so_o they_o must_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o book_n of_o scripture_n because_o she_o also_o say_v so_o her_o word_n be_v as_o good_a for_o the_o one_o as_o for_o the_o other_o but_o as_o they_o be_v liar_n so_o be_v they_o forgetful_a &_o therefore_o so_o contrary_a in_o their_o tale_n that_o they_o will_v say_v that_o they_o believe_v she_o in_o that_o but_o not_o in_o this_o where_o as_o rather_o it_o followethe_v that_o they_o believe_v her_o nether_a in_o the_o one_o nor_o in_o the_o other_o but_o only_o do_v give_v credit_n to_o their_o private_a spirit_n &_o imagination_n affirm_v that_o to_o be_v scripture_n which_o they_o imagine_v &_o those_o book_n only_o to_o be_v scripture_n which_o their_o spirit_n like_v of_o wherefore_o luther_n affirm_v that_o the_o book_n of_o job_n be_v but_o a_o tale_n test_n in_o ser_n con_fw-mi tit_n de_fw-fr libris_fw-la vet_z &_o novi_fw-la test_n devise_v to_o set_v forth_o a_o example_n of_o patience_n before_o our_o eye_n he_o jest_v at_o the_o autour_fw-fr of_o ecclesiastes_n say_v that_o he_o want_v boot_n and_o spur_n and_o therefore_o ride_v in_o his_o sock_n as_o he_o do_v when_o he_o be_v a_o friar_n test_n praef._n in_o nowm_fw-la test_n yea_o he_o spare_v not_o the_o new_a testament_n affirm_v that_o he_o like_v not_o of_o the_o common_a opinion_n which_o allow_v of_o fowre_a ghospelle_n and_o he_o add_v that_o saint_n ihons_n be_v the_o only_o true_a and_o principal_a gospel_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o other_o three_o be_v not_o authentical_a for_o if_o they_o be_v then_o be_v all_o fower_n of_o equal_a authority_n heb._n prafat_n in_o heb._n and_o so_o saint_n ihons_n gospel_n be_v not_o the_o principal_a he_o deny_v that_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrewes_n be_v apostolical_a the_o like_a be_v his_o censure_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o jude_n and_o james._n 1●_n praefat._n li._n 1._o inst_z c._n 11._o §._o 8_o l_o 2_o c._n 5._o §._o 18._o l._n ●_o c._n 5._o §._o 8._o ant._n s●ss_n 1●_n caluin_n reject_v the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la of_o judith_n of_o the_o machabee_n of_o toby_n and_o why_o trulye_o for_o no_o other_o reason_n then_o that_o these_o book_n seem_v most_o contrary_a to_o diverse_a point_n of_o their_o doctrine_n for_o other_o wise_a see_v that_o they_o can_v not_o discern_v scripture_n from_o other_o write_n but_o by_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o receve_v some_o book_n on_o her_o word_n and_o not_o all_o see_v that_o she_o give_v the_o same_o testimony_n of_o all_o but_o give_v a_o atheist_n this_o advantage_n and_o what_o will_v he_o say_v he_o will_v tell_v the_o reformer_n that_o he_o seethe_v no_o other_o warrant_v which_o they_o have_v for_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n then_o for_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrewes_n and_o the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n james_n nor_o for_o saint_n ihons_n gospel_n more_o than_o for_o the_o other_o three●_n nor_o for_o genesis_n more_o than_o the_o first_o and_o second_o book_n of_o the_o machaby_n toby_n judith_n and_o job_n and_o that_o therefore_o if_o the_o reformer_n deny_v these_o he_o will_v deny_v all_o the_o other_o because_o if_o the_o roman_a church_n warrant_v for_o they_o have_v no_o other_o warrant_v as_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n be_v prove_v be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o some_o of_o these_o book_n it_o can_v be_v no_o sufficient_a warrant_n for_o any_o and_o so_o he_o will_v say_v that_o you_o may_v as_o well_o deny_v all_o scripture_n as_o some_o book_n of_o scripture_n or_o if_o you_o willnot_v he_o will_v deny_v it_o for_o you_o and_o ground_n himself_o in_o your_o own_o doctrine_n and_o he_o will_v yet_o go_v far_o &_o avouche_v that_o if_o he_o may_v doubt_n of_o scripture_n as_o why_o not_o because_o there_o be_v no_o other_o warrant_a for_o it_o but_o the_o roman_a church_n word_n he_o will_v doubt_n also_o of_o the_o content_n of_o scripture_n and_o so_o he_o will_v call_v in_o question_n moses_n christ_n the_o apostle_n the_o trinity_n the_o incarnation_n the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o resurrection_n and_o all_o the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n wherefore_o as_o you_o credit_v the_o roman_a church_n for_o scripture_n so_o give_v her_o credit_n for_o the_o number_n of_o the_o book_n esscripture_n because_o her_o word_n &_o warrant_a be_v as_o good_a for_o this_o as_o for_o that_o or_o if_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v she_o in_o this_o you_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n of_o any_o part_n of_o scripture_n and_o so_o you_o may_v bring_v all_o into_o question_n whence_o follow_v contempt_n of_o all_o religion_n as_o be_v before_o prove_v the_o fifte_a chapter_n prove_v that_o their_o dissension_n in_o religion_n open_v the_o gap_n to_o contempt_n of_o all_o religion_n nothing_o be_v of_o more_o force_v they_o religion_n which_o keep_v we_o in_o awe_n bridle_v our_o appetite_n rule_v our_o action_n govern_v our_o life_n and_o inculcate_v unto_o we_o our_o duty_n towards_o god_n and_o man_n and_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o argument_n than_o the_o example_n of_o so_o many_o thousand_o martyr_n who_o have_v endure_v so_o exquisite_a torment_n and_o so_o horrible_a death_n rather_o than_o they_o will_v deny_v their_o religion_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o bear_v witness_n for_o religion_n that_o it_o be_v of_o great_a force_n than_o all_o the_o violence_n of_o the_o tyrant_n than_o all_o their_o engive_v and_o instrument_n of_o cruelty_n yea_o then_o death_n itself_o but_o so_o the_o force_n of_o a_o river_n be_v great_a and_o so_o great_a that_o sometime_o it_o over-throweth_a house_n and_o bridge_n and_o beat_v down_o all_o which_o standethe_v in_o the_o way_n of_o his_o stream_n but_o yet_o divide_v it_o into_o many_o little_a brook_n and_o a_o child_n will_v resist_v his_o force_n even_o so_o religion_n be_v of_o great_a force_n and_o efficacy_n and_o bear_v a_o great_a sway_v in_o the_o life_n of_o man_n but_o yet_o if_o it_o be_v divide_v into_o diverse_a sect_n it_o lose_v force_n and_o vigour_n and_o whereas_o while_o it_o remain_v unite_v 6._o see_v the_o second_o book_n chap._n 6._o it_o will_v not_o be_v resist_v when_o it_o be_v divide_v it_o be_v easilic_a contemn_v i_o have_v already_o describe_v the_o jar_n and_o dissension_n of_o the_o reformer_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o by_o this_o mark_n i_o have_v descry_v they_o to_o be_v heretic_n now_o let_v we_o see_v what_o a_o advantage_n this_o their_o dissension_n give_v to_o a_o atheist_n and_o what_o a_o wide_v gap_n it_o open_v unto_o atheism_n a_o atheist_n out_o of_o these_o their_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n may_v easy_o draw_v this_o discourse_n i_o see_v say_v he_o or_o at_o least_o he_o may_v say_v diverse_a sect_n and_o opinion_n diverse_a synagogue_n and_o religion_n diverse_a conventicle_n and_o congregation_n amongst_o you_o which_o as_o they_o have_v diversname_n so_o profess_v they_o diverse_a doctrine_n and_o follow_v diverse_a author_n and_o some_o of_o they_o be_v call_v lutheran_n some_o caluiniste_n which_o be_v by_o a_o subdivision_n part_v into_o soft_a and_o rigorous_a lutheran_n and_o into_o protestant_n &_o puritan_n other_o be_v call_v zwinglians_n other_o bezites_n other_o anabaptiste_n other_o libertine_n other_o brownistes_n other_o martiniste_n other_o be_v of_o the_o family_n of_o love_n other_o of_o the_o damn_a crew_n and_o although_o all_o these_o aggree_n against_o the_o roman_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n yet_o they_o disagree_v amongst_o they_o self_n and_o although_o they_o hold_v many_o and_o those_o also_o contrary_a opinion_n yet_o they_o all_o use_v one_o argument_n to_o prove_v their_o opinion_n to_o wit_n scripture_n sense_v by_o their_o private_a spirit_n and_o so_o will_v this_o atheist_n say_v if_o i_o believe_v one_o of_o these_o sect_n i_o must_v believe_v all_o because_o they_o allege_v one_o proof_n for_o their_o religion_n but_o see_v that_o i_o can_v not_o believe_v all_o because_o they_o teach_v contrariety_n lest_o i_o do_v any_o partial_a wrong_n in_o prefer_v one_o before_o another_o all_o have_v the_o same_o reason_n i_o will_v believe_v none_o of_o of_o they_o all_o nor_o none_o of_o their_o opinion_n and_o see_v that_o they_o condemn_v the_o catholic_a and_o roman_a religion_n for_o a_o farthel_n of_o superstition_n which_o not_o withstanding_o be_v ever_o count_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n even_o by_o the_o pagan_n themselves_o who_o therefore_o persecute_v it_o and_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o bind_v i_o to_o any_o of_o their_o religion_n unless_o i_o will_v be_v bind_v to_o a_o impossibility_n that_o be_v to_o be_v of_o all_o their_o religion_n and_o nether_a can_v nether_a
sacrament_n as_o we_o have_v for_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o we_o be_v as_o sure_a of_o the_o real_a meaning_n of_o the_o text_n which_o be_v allege_v for_o the_o real_a presence_n as_o of_o they_o which_o be_v use_v for_o proof_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o incarnation_n because_o the_o text_n be_v as_o plain_a and_o the_o interpreter_n as_o many_o and_o as_o plain_a also_o the_o circunstance_n also_o of_o the_o text_n make_v as_o much_o for_o the_o real_a presence_n as_o for_o those_o other_o tvoe_n mystery_n the_o real_a presence_n be_v no_o more_o impossible_a nor_o incredible_a to_o man_n conceit_n than_o those_o mystery_n be_v yea_o those_o be_v of_o great_a difficulty_n why_o then_o do_v the_o reformer_n deny_v the_o real_a presence_n rather_o than_o the_o trinity_n or_o incarnation_n if_o we_o have_v as_o good_a proof_n for_o this_o as_o for_o those_o verity_n we_o can_v not_o believe_v those_o but_o we_o must_v believe_v this_o or_o if_o these_o testimony_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o the_o real_a presence_n they_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o those_o verity_n and_o so_o if_o not_o with_o stand_v plain_a text_n circunstance_n of_o the_o text_n interpreter_n of_o the_o text_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o church_n we_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n or_o doubt_n of_o it_o we_o must_v necessary_o doubt_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n and_o call_v they_o and_o all_o the_o other_o mystery_n of_o christian_a faith_n in_o question_n for_o which_o we_o have_v no_o great_a nor_o no_o other_o proof_n because_o one_o proof_n be_v for_o all_o and_o as_o good_a for_o the_o euchariste_fw-fr as_o for_o any_o and_o if_o all_o the_o mystery_n of_o christian_n faith_n be_v call_v in_o question_n then_o see_v that_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o join_v with_o turck_n or_o jew_n in_o their_o religion_n we_o may_v bid_v adieu_a to_o all_o religion_n and_o sort_n ourselves_o with_o atheist_n who_o be_v of_o no_o religion_n finis_fw-la error_n in_o printing_n imyliethe_v for_o impli_v page_n 3._o line_n 25._o high_a for_o he_o pa._n 3._o lin_v 29._o to_o for_o do_v pa._n 10._o li._n 9_o oner_n for_o over_o pa._n 24._o li_n 12._o veary_n for_o very_a pa._n 18._o li._n 28._o branisicke_n for_o brainsick_a pa._n 27._o li._n 6._o show_v for_o show_v pa_z 36_o li._n 4._o veal_n for_o veil_n pag._n 36._o li._n 8._o thy_o for_n they_o pa._n 61._o li._n 6._o hugo_n for_o richardus_fw-la pag._n 114_o in_o the_o mark_fw-mi they_o for_o then_o pag._n 129._o li._n 9_o they_o for_o thy_o pag._n 247._o l._n 4._o it_o be_v self_n for_o itself_o 155._o li._n 31._o biourrovinge_v for_o borrowinge_v pa._n 175._o lin_v 8._o some_o for_o son_n pa._n 198._o li._n 29._o larned_a for_o learned_a 240._o li._n 19_o fow_v for_o four_o pa._n 240_o li._n 28._o fellow_v for_o follow_v pa._n 252._o li._n 23._o rule_v reason_n for_o rule_v by_o reason_n pa._n 253._o li._n 15._o bodily_a for_o boldlye_o pa._n 259._o li._n 31._o woe_o for_o two_o 294._o li._n 17._o demonstrate_v for_o be_v demonstrate_v pa_n 299_o li._n 27._o this_o for_o his_o 337._o li._n 20._o there_o for_o other_o pa._n 354._o li._n 13._o as_o it_o well_o for_o as_o well_o pa._n 355._o li._n 20_o haw_n for_o la_o pag._n 382._o li._n 10._o be_v not_o for_o it_o be_v not_o pa._n 422._o li._n 29._o pravers_n for_o prayer_n pa._n 436._o li._n 28._o be_o for_o and_o pa._n 346._o li._n 16._o ay_o i_o for_o i_o be_o pa._n 546._o li._n 22_o they_o for_o then_o pag._n 588._o lin_v 18._o boidled_a for_o bridle_v 606._o li._n 29._o farthe_n for_o faith_n pag._n 607._o lin_v 20._o staunge_n for_o strange_a pag._n 632._o li._n 16._o this_o for_o his_o pa._n 635_o li._n 4._o great_a for_o greek_a pa._n 727._o li_n 23._o lave_z for_o have_v pa._n 728._o li._n 6._o word_n omit_v page_n 158._o line_n 2._o which_o come_v in_o after_o the_o second_o word_n of_o the_o same_o line_n fiend_n so_o it_o happen_v to_o the_o heretic_n the_o the_o table_n a_o saint_n peter_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n send_v extraordinary_o pag_n 8._o they_o prove_v their_o mission_n by_o their_o work_n pag._n 22._o antiquity_n in_o all_o kynde_n of_o art_n alway_v reverence_v p._n 91._o the_o arrogancy_n of_o heretic_n in_o this_o age_n p._n 92._o a_o admonition_n to_o atheist_n p._n 112._o s._n ambrose_n his_o word_n to_o valentinian_n the_o emperor_n concern_v his_o office_n p._n 147._o infallible_a argument_n to_o prove_v the_o stability_n of_o the_o catholic_a or_o roman_a church_n p._n 198._o 202._o the_o agreement_n and_o consent_n in_o opinion_n that_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n p._n 214._o that_o the_o same_o can_v not_o but_o proceed_v of_o god_n p._n 218._o arius_n condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a consist_v of_o three_o hundred_o and_o 18._o bishop_n p_o 237._o the_o two_o advent_n of_o christ_n p._n 294._o adame_n endue_v with_o all_o natural_a science_n 308._o the_o diverse_a affection_n of_o the_o superior_a and_o inferior_a patte_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n p._n 328._o how_o they_o be_v both_o in_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o passion_n without_o sin_n ibid._n the_o reason_n of_o the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o old_a sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n p._n 382._o no_o moral_a or_o probable_a assurance_n of_o any_o sacrament_n at_o all_o amongst_o the_o reformer_n p._n 409._o the_o arian_n heresy_n 32._o no_o probable_a assurance_n of_o scripture_n if_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v reject_v 679._o usq_fw-la 688._o two_o kynde_n of_o atheist_n 640._o authority_n how_o it_o be_v get_v 118._o authority_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o new_a preacher_n compare_v 93._o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o aultare_fw-la 223._o 703._o b_o baptism_n be_v of_o no_o force_n and_o to_o no_o purpose_n according_a to_o caluins_n doctrine_n 422._o the_o prodigious_a beginning_n of_o heretic_n 17._o nothing_o in_o our_o belief_n against_o reason_n allthoughe_o above_o reason_n p._n 276._o what_o manner_n of_o belief_n or_o confidence_n be_v require_v in_o prayer_n p._n 440._o beza_n his_o presumption_n in_o correctinge_v a_o evangelist_n 720._o diverse_a bitter_a blasphemy_n where_o with_o most_o spiteful_o luther_n caluin_n and_o a_o rabble_n of_o other_o miscreant_n bark_n at_o the_o bless_a virgin_n 343._o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n never_o make_v breach_n out_o of_o any_o other_o church_n as_o alway_n heretic_n have_v 163._o c_o the_o success_n caluin_n have_v in_o his_o pretend_a miracle_n p._n 25._o his_o smalle_n account_v of_o father_n 88_o mark_v in_o the_o back_n not_o for_o his_o goodness_n 121._o his_o herodian_a death_n ibid._n his_o assertion_n injurious_a to_o christ_n to_o which_o in_o some_o sort_n suscribe_v whytaker_n and_o jewell_fw-mi p._n 249._o his_o lewd_a distinction_n betwixt_v the_o old_a and_o new_a law_n 281._o his_o absurd_a blasphemy_n 304._o his_o execrable_a doctrine_n concern_v god_n 303._o he_o take_v the_o from_o christ_n the_o title_n of_o a_o judge_n 300._o he_o makethe_v he_o a_o desperate_a man_n 325._o he_o bringethe_v he_o to_o hell_n and_o make_v the_o he_o a_o companion_n of_o the_o damn_a 332._o his_o miserable_a end_n 338._o he_o make_v the_o god_n a_o great_a patron_n of_o sin_n then_o the_o devil_n be_v 450._o his_o iustifyinge_v faith_n take_v away_v prayer_n under_o penaltye_n of_o becominge_v a_o infidel_n 439._o his_o opinion_n of_o iustifyinge_v faith_n 442._o of_o sin_n ibid._n of_o good_a work_n 442._o of_o free_a will_n ibid._n which_o make_v the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la or_o our_o lord_n prayer_n to_o be_v needle_n yea_o pernicious_a to_o faith_n 443._o his_o opinion_n of_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n 408._o of_o what_o smalle_a importance_n he_o make_v they_o 413._o the_o good_a alteration_n that_o catholic_a religion_n work_v in_o those_o which_o sincere_o embrace_v it_o ●23_n that_o in_o sundry_a perfection_n catholic_n excel_v the_o reformer_n p._n 120_o usq_n ad_fw-la 124._o the_o effect_n of_o true_a charity_n 341._o christ_n himself_o send_v p_o 4._o he_o provethe_v his_o mission_n by_o his_o work_n 22._o the_o reason_n why_o he_o institute_v a_o succession_n of_o pastor_n in_o his_o church_n 16._o in_o what_o sense_n he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v the_o priest_n the_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o god_n to_o who_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v pa._n 251._o how_o he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n notwithstanding_o that_o sanctification_n be_v require_v at_o our_o hand_n pag._n 261._o that_o he_o play_v all_o the_o part_n of_o a_o spiritual_a physician_n q_o 271._o he_o have_v no_o successor_n allthoughe_o many_o vicegerente_n pag._n 285._o 364._o how_o his_o sole_a supreme_a authority_n over_o the_o church_n consistethe_v with_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o